<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
<hr class="full" />
<h1>AFTER LONDON</h1>
<h2>or Wild England</h2>
<h3>by Richard Jefferies</h3>
<table align="center" border="0"
summary="Images of source book's bindings and title page">
<tr>
<td><SPAN href="./images/spine.jpg"><ANTIMG src="./images/spine_a.jpg" alt="Image of book spine" title="Image of book spine" /></SPAN></td>
<td><SPAN href="./images/cover.jpg"><ANTIMG src="./images/cover_a.jpg" alt="Image of book cover" title="Image of book cover" /></SPAN></td>
<td><SPAN href="./images/title.jpg"><ANTIMG src="./images/title_a.jpg" alt="Image of title page" title="Image of title page" /></SPAN></td></tr></table>
<br/>
<br/>
<hr class="full" />
<SPAN name="Contents" id="Contents"></SPAN>
<h2>Contents</h2>
<br/>
<ul class="TOC">
<li><SPAN href="#Part_I">Part I: The Relapse into Barbarism</SPAN></li>
<li>
<ul class="TOC">
<li>Chapter 1 <SPAN href="#Chap1-1">The Great
Forest</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 2 <SPAN href="#Chap1-2">Wild Animals</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 3 <SPAN href="#Chap1-3">Men of the
Woods</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 4 <SPAN href="#Chap1-4">The Invaders</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 5 <SPAN href="#Chap1-5">The
Lake</SPAN></li></ul></li>
<li><SPAN href="#Part_II">Part II: Wild England</SPAN></li>
<li>
<ul class="TOC">
<li>Chapter 1 <SPAN href="#Chap2-1">Sir Felix</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 2 <SPAN href="#Chap2-2">The House of
Aquila</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 3 <SPAN href="#Chap2-3">The Stockade</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 4 <SPAN href="#Chap2-4">The Canoe</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 5 <SPAN href="#Chap2-5">Baron Aquila</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 6 <SPAN href="#Chap2-6">The Forest
Track</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 7 <SPAN href="#Chap2-7">The Forest Track
continued</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 8 <SPAN href="#Chap2-8">Thyma Castle</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 9
<SPAN href="#Chap2-9">Superstitions</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 10 <SPAN href="#Chap2-10">The Feast</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 11 <SPAN href="#Chap2-11">Aurora</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 12 <SPAN href="#Chap2-12">Night in the
Forest</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 13 <SPAN href="#Chap2-13">Sailing Away</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 14 <SPAN href="#Chap2-14">The Straits</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 15 <SPAN href="#Chap2-15">Sailing Onwards</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 16 <SPAN href="#Chap2-16">The City</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 17 <SPAN href="#Chap2-17">The Camp</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 18 <SPAN href="#Chap2-18">The King's Levy</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 19 <SPAN href="#Chap2-19">Fighting</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 20 <SPAN href="#Chap2-20">In Danger</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 21 <SPAN href="#Chap2-21">A Voyage</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 22 <SPAN href="#Chap2-22">Discoveries</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 23 <SPAN href="#Chap2-23">Strange Things</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 24 <SPAN href="#Chap2-24">Fiery Vapours</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 25 <SPAN href="#Chap2-25">The Shepherds</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 26 <SPAN href="#Chap2-26">Bow and Arrow</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 27 <SPAN href="#Chap2-27">Surprised</SPAN></li>
<li>Chapter 28 <SPAN href="#Chap2-28">For
Aurora</SPAN></li></ul></li></ul>
<br/>
<hr class="full" />
<SPAN name="Part_I" id="Part_I"></SPAN>
<h2>Part I<br/> The Relapse into Barbarism</h2>
<br/>
<SPAN name="Chap1-1" id="Chap1-1"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER I<br/> THE GREAT FOREST</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>The old men say their fathers told them that soon after the
fields were left to themselves a change began to be visible. It
became green everywhere in the first spring, after London ended, so
that all the country looked alike.</p>
<p>The meadows were green, and so was the rising wheat which had
been sown, but which neither had nor would receive any further
care. Such arable fields as had not been sown, but where the last
stubble had been ploughed up, were overrun with couch-grass, and
where the short stubble had not been ploughed, the weeds hid it. So
that there was no place which was not more or less green; the
footpaths were the greenest of all, for such is the nature of grass
where it has once been trodden on, and by-and-by, as the summer
came on, the former roads were thinly covered with the grass that
had spread out from the margin.</p>
<p>In the autumn, as the meadows were not mown, the grass withered
as it stood, falling this way and that, as the wind had blown it;
the seeds dropped, and the bennets became a greyish-white, or,
where the docks and sorrel were thick, a brownish-red. The wheat,
after it had ripened, there being no one to reap it, also remained
standing, and was eaten by clouds of sparrows, rooks, and pigeons,
which flocked to it and were undisturbed, feasting at their
pleasure. As the winter came on, the crops were beaten down by the
storms, soaked with rain, and trodden upon by herds of animals.</p>
<p>Next summer the prostrate straw of the preceding year was
concealed by the young green wheat and barley that sprang up from
the grain sown by dropping from the ears, and by quantities of
docks, thistles, oxeye daisies, and similar plants. This matted
mass grew up through the bleached straw. Charlock, too, hid the
rotting roots in the fields under a blaze of yellow flower. The
young spring meadow-grass could scarcely push its way up through
the long dead grass and bennets of the year previous, but docks and
thistles, sorrel, wild carrots, and nettles, found no such
difficulty.</p>
<p>Footpaths were concealed by the second year, but roads could be
traced, though as green as the sward, and were still the best for
walking, because the tangled wheat and weeds, and, in the meadows,
the long grass, caught the feet of those who tried to pass through.
Year by year the original crops of wheat, barley, oats, and beans
asserted their presence by shooting up, but in gradually diminished
force, as nettles and coarser plants, such as the wild parsnips,
spread out into the fields from the ditches and choked them.</p>
<p>Aquatic grasses from the furrows and water-carriers extended in
the meadows, and, with the rushes, helped to destroy or take the
place of the former sweet herbage. Meanwhile, the brambles, which
grew very fast, had pushed forward their prickly runners farther
and farther from the hedges till they had now reached ten or
fifteen yards. The briars had followed, and the hedges had widened
to three or four times their first breadth, the fields being
equally contracted. Starting from all sides at once, these brambles
and briars in the course of about twenty years met in the centre of
the largest fields.</p>
<p>Hawthorn bushes sprang up among them, and, protected by the
briars and thorns from grazing animals, the suckers of elm-trees
rose and flourished. Sapling ashes, oaks, sycamores, and
horse-chestnuts, lifted their heads. Of old time the cattle would
have eaten off the seed leaves with the grass so soon as they were
out of the ground, but now most of the acorns that were dropped by
birds, and the keys that were wafted by the wind, twirling as they
floated, took root and grew into trees. By this time the brambles
and briars had choked up and blocked the former roads, which were
as impassable as the fields.</p>
<p>No fields, indeed, remained, for where the ground was dry, the
thorns, briars, brambles, and saplings already mentioned filled the
space, and these thickets and the young trees had converted most
part of the country into an immense forest. Where the ground was
naturally moist, and the drains had become choked with willow
roots, which, when confined in tubes, grow into a mass like the
brush of a fox, sedges and flags and rushes covered it. Thorn
bushes were there, too, but not so tall; they were hung with
lichen. Besides the flags and reeds, vast quantities of the tallest
cow-parsnips or "gicks" rose five or six feet high, and the willow
herb with its stout stem, almost as woody as a shrub, filled every
approach.</p>
<p>By the thirtieth year there was not one single open place, the
hills only excepted, where a man could walk, unless he followed the
tracks of wild creatures or cut himself a path. The ditches, of
course, had long since become full of leaves and dead branches, so
that the water which should have run off down them stagnated, and
presently spread out into the hollow places and by the corner of
what had once been fields, forming marshes where the horsetails,
flags, and sedges hid the water.</p>
<p>As no care was taken with the brooks, the hatches upon them
gradually rotted, and the force of the winter rains carried away
the weak timbers, flooding the lower grounds, which became swamps
of larger size. The dams, too, were drilled by water-rats, and the
streams percolating through, slowly increased the size of these
tunnels till the structure burst, and the current swept on and
added to the floods below. Mill-dams stood longer, but, as the
ponds silted up, the current flowed round and even through the
mill-houses, which, going by degrees to ruin, were in some cases
undermined till they fell.</p>
<p>Everywhere the lower lands adjacent to the streams had become
marshes, some of them extending for miles in a winding line, and
occasionally spreading out to a mile in breadth. This was
particularly the case where brooks and streams of some volume
joined the rivers, which were also blocked and obstructed in their
turn, and the two, overflowing, covered the country around; for the
rivers brought down trees and branches, timbers floated from the
shore, and all kinds of similar materials, which grounded in the
shallows or caught against snags, and formed huge piles where there
had been weirs.</p>
<p>Sometimes, after great rains, these piles swept away the timbers
of the weir, driven by the irresistible power of the water, and
then in its course the flood, carrying the balks before it like
battering rams, cracked and split the bridges of solid stone which
the ancients had built. These and the iron bridges likewise were
overthrown, and presently quite disappeared, for the very
foundations were covered with the sand and gravel silted up.</p>
<p>Thus, too, the sites of many villages and towns that anciently
existed along the rivers, or on the lower lands adjoining, were
concealed by the water and the mud it brought with it. The sedges
and reeds that arose completed the work and left nothing visible,
so that the mighty buildings of olden days were by these means
utterly buried. And, as has been proved by those who have dug for
treasures, in our time the very foundations are deep beneath the
earth, and not to be got at for the water that oozes into the
shafts that they have tried to sink through the sand and mud
banks.</p>
<p>From an elevation, therefore, there was nothing visible but
endless forest and marsh. On the level ground and plains the view
was limited to a short distance, because of the thickets and the
saplings which had now become young trees. The downs only were
still partially open, yet it was not convenient to walk upon them
except in the tracks of animals, because of the long grass which,
being no more regularly grazed upon by sheep, as was once the case,
grew thick and tangled. Furze, too, and heath covered the slopes,
and in places vast quantities of fern. There had always been copses
of fir and beech and nut-tree covers, and these increased and
spread, while bramble, briar, and hawthorn extended around
them.</p>
<p>By degrees the trees of the vale seemed as it were to invade and
march up the hills, and, as we see in our time, in many places the
downs are hidden altogether with a stunted kind of forest. But all
the above happened in the time of the first generation. Besides
these things a great physical change took place; but before I speak
of that, it will be best to relate what effects were produced upon
animals and men.</p>
<p>In the first years after the fields were left to themselves, the
fallen and over-ripe corn crops became the resort of innumerable
mice. They swarmed to an incredible degree, not only devouring the
grain upon the straw that had never been cut, but clearing out
every single ear in the wheat-ricks that were standing about the
country. Nothing remained in these ricks but straw, pierced with
tunnels and runs, the home and breeding-place of mice, which thence
poured forth into the fields. Such grain as had been left in barns
and granaries, in mills, and in warehouses of the deserted towns,
disappeared in the same manner.</p>
<p>When men tried to raise crops in small gardens and enclosures
for their sustenance, these legions of mice rushed in and destroyed
the produce of their labour. Nothing could keep them out, and if a
score were killed, a hundred more supplied their place. These mice
were preyed upon by kestrel hawks, owls, and weasels; but at first
they made little or no appreciable difference. In a few years,
however, the weasels, having such a superabundance of food, trebled
in numbers, and in the same way the hawks, owls, and foxes
increased. There was then some relief, but even now at intervals
districts are invaded, and the granaries and the standing corn
suffer from these depredations.</p>
<p>This does not happen every year, but only at intervals, for it
is noticed that mice abound very much more in some seasons than
others. The extraordinary multiplication of these creatures was the
means of providing food for the cats that had been abandoned in the
towns, and came forth into the country in droves. Feeding on the
mice, they became, in a very short time, quite wild, and their
descendants now roam the forest.</p>
<p>In our houses we still have several varieties of the domestic
cat, such as the tortoise-shell, which is the most prized, but when
the above-mentioned cats became wild, after a while the several
varieties disappeared, and left but one wild kind. Those which are
now so often seen in the forest, and which do so much mischief
about houses and enclosures, are almost all greyish, some being
striped, and they are also much longer in the body than the tame. A
few are jet black; their skins are then preferred by hunters.</p>
<p>Though the forest cat retires from the sight of man as much as
possible, yet it is extremely fierce in defence of its young, and
instances have been known where travellers in the woods have been
attacked upon unwittingly approaching their dens. Dropping from the
boughs of a tree upon the shoulders, the creature flies at the
face, inflicting deep scratches and bites, exceedingly painful, and
sometimes dangerous, from the tendency to fester. But such cases
are rare, and the reason the forest cat is so detested is because
it preys upon fowls and poultry, mounting with ease the trees or
places where they roost.</p>
<p>Almost worse than the mice were the rats, which came out of the
old cities in such vast numbers that the people who survived and
saw them are related to have fled in fear. This terror, however,
did not last so long as the evil of the mice, for the rats,
probably not finding sufficient food when together, scattered
abroad, and were destroyed singly by the cats and dogs, who slew
them by thousands, far more than they could afterwards eat, so that
the carcases were left to decay. It is said that, overcome with
hunger, these armies of rats in some cases fell upon each other,
and fed on their own kindred. They are still numerous, but do not
appear to do the same amount of damage as is occasionally caused by
the mice, when the latter invade the cultivated lands.</p>
<p>The dogs, of course, like the cats, were forced by starvation
into the fields, where they perished in incredible numbers. Of many
species of dogs which are stated to have been plentiful among the
ancients, we have now nothing but the name. The poodle is extinct,
the Maltese terrier, the Pomeranian, the Italian greyhound, and, it
is believed, great numbers of crosses and mongrels have utterly
disappeared. There was none to feed them, and they could not find
food for themselves, nor could they stand the rigour of the winter
when exposed to the frost in the open air.</p>
<p>Some kinds, more hardy and fitted by nature for the chase,
became wild, and their descendants are now found in the woods. Of
these, there are three sorts which keep apart from each other, and
are thought not to interbreed. The most numerous are the black. The
black wood-dog is short and stoutly made, with shaggy hair,
sometimes marked with white patches.</p>
<p>There can be no doubt that it is the descendant of the ancient
sheep-dog, for it is known that the sheep-dog was of that
character, and it is said that those who used to keep sheep soon
found their dogs abandon the fold, and join the wild troops that
fell upon the sheep. The black wood-dogs hunt in packs of ten or
more (as many as forty have been counted), and are the pest of the
farmer, for, unless his flocks are protected at night within
stockades or enclosures, they are certain to be attacked. Not
satisfied with killing enough to satisfy hunger, these dogs tear
and mangle for sheer delight of blood, and will destroy twenty
times as many as they can eat, leaving the miserably torn carcases
on the field. Nor are the sheep always safe by day if the wood-dogs
happen to be hungry. The shepherd is, therefore, usually
accompanied by two or three mastiffs, of whose great size and
strength the others stand in awe. At night, and when in large
packs, starving in the snow, not even the mastiffs can check
them.</p>
<p>No wood-dog, of any kind, has ever been known to attack man, and
the hunter in the forest hears their bark in every direction
without fear. It is, nevertheless, best to retire out of their way
when charging sheep in packs, for they then seem seized with a
blind fury, and some who have endeavoured to fight them have been
thrown down and seriously mauled. But this has been in the
blindness of their rush; no instance has ever been known of their
purposely attacking man.</p>
<p>These black wood-dogs will also chase and finally pull down
cattle, if they can get within the enclosures, and even horses have
fallen victims to their untiring thirst for blood. Not even the
wild cattle can always escape, despite their strength, and they
have been known to run down stags, though not their usual
quarry.</p>
<p>The next kind of wild wood-dog is the yellow, a smaller animal,
with smooth hair inclining to a yellow colour, which lives
principally upon game, chasing all, from the hare to the stag. It
is as swift, or nearly as swift, as the greyhound, and possesses
greater endurance. In coursing the hare, it not uncommonly happens
that these dogs start from the brake and take the hare, when nearly
exhausted, from the hunter's hounds. They will in the same way
follow a stag, which has been almost run down by the hunters, and
bring him to bay, though in this case they lose their booty,
dispersing through fear of man, when the hunters come up in a
body.</p>
<p>But such is their love of the chase, that they are known to
assemble from their lairs at the distant sound of the horn, and, as
the hunters ride through the woods, they often see the yellow dogs
flitting along side by side with them through bush and fern. These
animals sometimes hunt singly, sometimes in couples, and as the
season advances, and winter approaches, in packs of eight or
twelve. They never attack sheep or cattle, and avoid man, except
when they perceive he is engaged in the chase. There is little
doubt that they are the descendants of the dogs which the ancients
called lurchers, crossed, perhaps, with the greyhound, and possibly
other breeds. When the various species of dogs were thrown on their
own resources, those only withstood the exposure and hardships
which were naturally hardy, and possessed natural aptitude for the
chase.</p>
<p>The third species of wood-dog is the white. They are low on the
legs, of a dingy white colour, and much smaller than the other two.
They neither attack cattle nor game, though fond of hunting
rabbits. This dog is, in fact, a scavenger, living upon the
carcases of dead sheep and animals, which are found picked clean in
the night. For this purpose it haunts the neighbourhood of
habitations, and prowls in the evening over heaps of refuse,
scampering away at the least alarm, for it is extremely timid.</p>
<p>It is perfectly harmless, for even the poultry do not dread it,
and it will not face a tame cat, if by chance the two meet. It is
rarely met with far from habitations, though it will accompany an
army on the march. It may be said to remain in one district. The
black and yellow dogs, on the contrary, roam about the forest
without apparent home. One day the hunter sees signs of their
presence, and perhaps may, for a month afterwards, not so much as
hear a bark.</p>
<p>This uncertainty in the case of the black dog is the bane of the
shepherds; for, not seeing or hearing anything of the enemy for
months altogether, in spite of former experience their vigilance
relaxes, and suddenly, while they sleep, their flocks are
scattered. We still have, among tame dogs, the mastiff, terrier,
spaniel, deerhound, and greyhound, all of which are as faithful to
man as ever.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap1-2" id="Chap1-2"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER II<br/> WILD ANIMALS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>When the ancients departed, great numbers of their cattle
perished. It was not so much the want of food as the inability to
endure exposure that caused their death; a few winters are related
to have so reduced them that they died by hundreds, many mangled by
dogs. The hardiest that remained became perfectly wild, and the
wood cattle are now more difficult to approach than deer.</p>
<p>There are two kinds, the white and the black. The white
(sometimes dun) are believed to be the survivors of the domestic
roan-and-white, for the cattle in our enclosures at the present day
are of that colour. The black are smaller, and are doubtless little
changed from their state in the olden times, except that they are
wild. These latter are timid, unless accompanied by a calf, and are
rarely known to turn upon their pursuers. But the white are fierce
at all times; they will not, indeed, attack man, but will scarcely
run from him, and it is not always safe to cross their haunts.</p>
<p>The bulls are savage beyond measure at certain seasons of the
year. If they see men at a distance, they retire; if they come
unexpectedly face to face, they attack. This characteristic enables
those who travel through districts known to be haunted by white
cattle to provide against an encounter, for, by occasionally
blowing a horn, the herd that may be in the vicinity is dispersed.
There are not often more than twenty in a herd. The hides of the
dun are highly prized, both for their intrinsic value, and as
proofs of skill and courage, so much so that you shall hardly buy a
skin for all the money you may offer; and the horns are likewise
trophies. The white or dun bull is the monarch of our forests.</p>
<p>Four kinds of wild pigs are found. The most numerous, or at
least the most often seen, as it lies about our enclosures, is the
common thorn-hog. It is the largest of the wild pigs, long-bodied
and flat-sided, in colour much the hue of the mud in which it
wallows. To the agriculturist it is the greatest pest, destroying
or damaging all kinds of crops, and routing up the gardens. It is
with difficulty kept out by palisading, for if there be a weak
place in the wooden framework, the strong snout of the animal is
sure to undermine and work a passage through.</p>
<p>As there are always so many of these pigs round about inhabited
places and cultivated fields, constant care is required, for they
instantly discover an opening. From their habit of haunting the
thickets and bush which come up to the verge of the enclosures,
they have obtained the name of thorn-hogs. Some reach an immense
size, and they are very prolific, so that it is impossible to
destroy them. The boars are fierce at a particular season, but
never attack unless provoked to do so. But when driven to bay they
are the most dangerous of the boars, on account of their vast size
and weight. They are of a sluggish disposition, and will not rise
from their lairs unless forced to do so.</p>
<p>The next kind is the white hog, which has much the same habits
as the former, except that it is usually found in moist places,
near lakes and rivers, and is often called the marsh-pig. The third
kind is perfectly black, much smaller in size, and very active,
affording by far the best sport, and also the best food when
killed. As they are found on the hills where the ground is somewhat
more open, horses can follow freely, and the chase becomes
exciting. By some it is called the hill-hog, from the locality it
frequents. The small tusks of the black boar are used for many
ornamental purposes.</p>
<p>These three species are considered to be the descendants of the
various domestic pigs of the ancients, but the fourth, or grey, is
thought to be the true wild boar. It is seldom seen, but is most
common in the south-western forests, where, from the quantity of
fern, it is called the fern-pig. This kind is believed to represent
the true wild boar, which was extinct, or merged in the domestic
hog among the ancients, except in that neighbourhood where the
strain remained.</p>
<p>With wild times, the wild habits have returned, and the grey
boar is at once the most difficult of access, and the most ready to
encounter either dogs or men. Although the first, or thorn-hog,
does the most damage to the agriculturist because of its numbers,
and its habit of haunting the neighbourhood of enclosures, the
others are equally injurious if they chance to enter the cultivated
fields.</p>
<p>The three principal kinds of wild sheep are the horned, the
thyme, and the meadow. The thyme sheep are the smallest, and haunt
the highest hills in the south, where, feeding on the sweet herbage
of the ridges, their flesh is said to acquire a flavour of wild
thyme. They move in small flocks of not more than thirty, and are
the most difficult to approach, being far more wary than deer, so
continuously are they hunted by the wood-dogs. The horned are
larger, and move in greater numbers; as many as two hundred are
sometimes seen together.</p>
<p>They are found on the lower slopes and plains, and in the woods.
The meadow sheep have long shaggy wool, which is made into various
articles of clothing, but they are not numerous. They haunt river
sides, and the shores of lakes and ponds. None of these are easily
got at, on account of the wood-dogs; but the rams of the horned
kind are reputed to sometimes turn upon the pursuing pack, and butt
them to death. In the extremity of their terror whole flocks of
wild sheep have been driven over precipices and into quagmires and
torrents.</p>
<p>Besides these, there are several other species whose haunt is
local. On the islands, especially, different kinds are found. The
wood-dogs will occasionally, in calm weather, swim out to an island
and kill every sheep upon it.</p>
<p>From the horses that were in use among the ancients the two wild
species now found are known to have descended, a fact confirmed by
their evident resemblance to the horses we still retain. The
largest wild horse is almost black, or inclined to a dark colour,
somewhat less in size than our present waggon horses, but of the
same heavy make. It is, however, much swifter, on account of having
enjoyed liberty for so long. It is called the bush-horse, being
generally distributed among thickets and meadow-like lands
adjoining water.</p>
<p>The other species is called the hill-pony, from its habitat, the
hills, and is rather less in size than our riding-horse. This
latter is short and thick-set, so much so as not to be easily
ridden by short persons without high stirrups. Neither of these
wild horses are numerous, but neither are they uncommon. They keep
entirely separate from each other. As many as thirty mares are
sometimes seen together, but there are districts where the
traveller will not observe one for weeks.</p>
<p>Tradition says that in the olden times there were horses of a
slender build whose speed outstripped the wind, but of the breed of
these famous racers not one is left. Whether they were too delicate
to withstand exposure, or whether the wild dogs hunted them down is
uncertain, but they are quite gone. Did but one exist, how eagerly
it would be sought out, for in these days it would be worth its
weight in gold, unless, indeed, as some affirm, such speed only
endured for a mile or two.</p>
<p>It is not necessary, having written thus far of the animals,
that anything be said of the birds of the woods, which every one
knows were not always wild, and which can, indeed, be compared with
such poultry as are kept in our enclosures. Such are the bush-hens,
the wood-turkeys, the galenæ, the peacocks, the white duck
and the white goose, all of which, though now wild as the hawk, are
well known to have been once tame.</p>
<p>There were deer, red and fallow, in numerous parks and chases of
very old time, and these, having got loose, and having such immense
tracts to roam over unmolested, went on increasing till now they
are beyond computation, and I have myself seen a thousand head
together. Within these forty years, as I learn, the roe-deer, too,
have come down from the extreme north, so that there are now three
sorts in the woods. Before them the pine-marten came from the same
direction, and, though they are not yet common, it is believed they
are increasing. For the first few years after the change took place
there seemed a danger lest the foreign wild beasts that had been
confined as curiosities in menageries should multiply and remain in
the woods. But this did not happen.</p>
<p>Some few lions, tigers, bears, and other animals did indeed
escape, together with many less furious creatures, and it is
related that they roamed about the fields for a long time. They
were seldom met with, having such an extent of country to wander
over, and after a while entirely disappeared. If any progeny were
born, the winter frosts must have destroyed it, and the same fate
awaited the monstrous serpents which had been collected for
exhibition. Only one such animal now exists which is known to owe
its origin to those which escaped from the dens of the ancients. It
is the beaver, whose dams are now occasionally found upon the
streams by those who traverse the woods. Some of the aquatic birds,
too, which frequent the lakes, are thought to have been originally
derived from those which were formerly kept as curiosities.</p>
<p>In the castle yard at Longtover may still be seen the bones of
an elephant which was found dying in the woods near that spot.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap1-3" id="Chap1-3"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER III<br/> MEN OF THE WOODS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>So far as this, all that I have stated has been clear, and there
can be no doubt that what has been thus handed down from mouth to
mouth is for the most part correct. When I pass from trees and
animals to men, however, the thing is different, for nothing is
certain and everything confused. None of the accounts agree, nor
can they be altogether reconciled with present facts or with
reasonable supposition; yet it is not so long since but a few
memories, added one to the other, can bridge the time, and, though
not many, there are some written notes still to be found. I must
attribute the discrepancy to the wars and hatreds which sprang up
and divided the people, so that one would not listen to what the
others wished to say, and the truth was lost.</p>
<p>Besides which, in the conflagration which consumed the towns,
most of the records were destroyed, and are no longer to be
referred to. And it may be that even when they were proceeding, the
causes of the change were not understood. Therefore, what I am now
about to describe is not to be regarded as the ultimate truth, but
as the nearest to which I could attain after comparing the various
traditions. Some say, then, that the first beginning of the change
was because the sea silted up the entrances to the ancient ports,
and stopped the vast commerce which was once carried on. It is
certainly true that many of the ports are silted up, and are now
useless as such, but whether the silting up preceded the
disappearance of the population, or whether the disappearance of
the population, and the consequent neglect caused the silting, I
cannot venture to positively assert.</p>
<p>For there are signs that the level of the sea has sunk in some
places, and signs that it has become higher in others, so that the
judicious historian will simply state the facts, and refrain from
colouring them with his own theory as Silvester has done. Others
again maintain that the supply of food from over the ocean suddenly
stopping caused great disorders, and that the people crowded on
board all the ships to escape starvation, and sailed away, and were
no more heard of.</p>
<p>It has, too, been said that the earth, from some attractive
power exercised by the passage of an enormous dark body through
space, became tilted or inclined to its orbit more than before, and
that this, while it lasted, altered the flow of the magnetic
currents, which, in an imperceptible manner, influence the minds of
men. Hitherto the stream of human life had directed itself to the
westward, but when this reversal of magnetism occurred, a general
desire arose to return to the east. And those whose business is
theology have pointed out that the wickedness of those times
surpassed understanding, and that a change and sweeping away of the
human evil that had accumulated was necessary, and was effected by
supernatural means. The relation of this must be left to them,
since it is not the province of the philosopher to meddle with such
matters.</p>
<p>All that seems certain is, that when the event took place, the
immense crowds collected in cities were most affected, and that the
richer and upper classes made use of their money to escape. Those
left behind were mainly the lower and most ignorant, so far as the
arts were concerned; those that dwelt in distant and outlying
places; and those who lived by agriculture. These last at that date
had fallen to such distress that they could not hire vessels to
transport themselves. The exact number of those left behind cannot,
of course, be told, but it is on record that when the fields were
first neglected (as I have already described), a man might ride a
hundred miles and not meet another. They were not only few, but
scattered, and had not drawn together and formed towns as at
present.</p>
<p>Of what became of the vast multitudes that left the country,
nothing has ever been heard, and no communication has been received
from them. For this reason I cannot conceal my opinion that they
must have sailed either to the westward or to the southward where
the greatest extent of ocean is understood to exist, and not to the
eastward as Silvester would have it in his work upon the "Unknown
Orb", the dark body travelling in space to which I have alluded.
None of our vessels in the present day dare venture into those
immense tracts of sea, nor, indeed, out of sight of land, unless
they know they shall see it again so soon as they have reached and
surmounted the ridge of the horizon. Had they only crossed to the
mainland or continent again, we should most likely have heard of
their passage across the countries there.</p>
<p>It is true that ships rarely come over, and only to two ports,
and that the men on them say (so far as can be understood) that
their country is equally deserted now, and has likewise lost its
population. But still, as men talk unto men, and we pass
intelligence across great breadths of land, it is almost certain
that, had they travelled that way, some echo of their footsteps
would yet sound back to us. Regarding this theory, therefore, as
untenable, I put forward as a suggestion that the ancients really
sailed to the west or to the south.</p>
<p>As, for the most part, those who were left behind were ignorant,
rude, and unlettered, it consequently happened that many of the
marvellous things which the ancients did, and the secrets of their
science, are known to us by name only, and, indeed, hardly by name.
It has happened to us in our turn as it happened to the ancients.
For they were aware that in times before their own the art of
making glass malleable had been discovered, so that it could be
beaten into shape like copper. But the manner in which it was
accomplished was entirely unknown to them; the fact was on record,
but the cause lost. So now we know that those who to us are the
ancients had a way of making diamonds and precious stones out of
black and lustreless charcoal, a fact which approaches the
incredible. Still, we do not doubt it, though we cannot imagine by
what means it was carried out.</p>
<p>They also sent intelligence to the utmost parts of the earth
along wires which were not tubular, but solid, and therefore could
not transmit sound, and yet the person who received the message
could hear and recognise the voice of the sender a thousand miles
away. With certain machines worked by fire, they traversed the land
swift as the swallow glides through the sky, but of these things
not a relic remains to us. What metal-work or wheels or bars of
iron were left, and might have given us a clue, were all broken up
and melted down for use in other ways when metal became scarce.</p>
<p>Mounds of earth are said to still exist in the woods, which
originally formed the roads for these machines, but they are now so
low, and so covered with thickets, that nothing can be learnt from
them; and, indeed, though I have heard of their existence, I have
never seen one. Great holes were made through the very hills for
the passage of the iron chariot, but they are now blocked by the
falling roofs, nor dare any one explore such parts as may yet be
open. Where are the wonderful structures with which the men of
those days were lifted to the skies, rising above the clouds? These
marvellous things are to us little more than fables of the giants
and of the old gods that walked upon the earth, which were fables
even to those whom we call the ancients.</p>
<p>Indeed, we have fuller knowledge of those extremely ancient
times than of the people who immediately preceded us, and the
Romans and the Greeks are more familiar to us than the men who rode
in the iron chariots and mounted to the skies. The reason why so
many arts and sciences were lost was because, as I have previously
said, the most of those who were left in the country were ignorant,
rude, and unlettered. They had seen the iron chariots, but did not
understand the method of their construction, and could not hand
down the knowledge they did not themselves possess. The magic wires
of intelligence passed through their villages, but they did not
know how to work them.</p>
<p>The cunning artificers of the cities all departed, and
everything fell quickly into barbarism; nor could it be wondered
at, for the few and scattered people of those days had enough to do
to preserve their lives. Communication between one place and
another was absolutely cut off, and if one perchance did recollect
something that might have been of use, he could not confer with
another who knew the other part, and thus between them reconstruct
the machine. In the second generation even these disjointed
memories died out.</p>
<p>At first it is supposed that those who remained behind existed
upon the grain in the warehouses, and what they could thresh by the
flail from the crops left neglected in the fields. But as the
provisions in the warehouses were consumed or spoiled, they hunted
the animals, lately tame and as yet but half wild. As these grew
less in number and difficult to overtake, they set to work again to
till the ground, and cleared away small portions of the earth,
encumbered already with brambles and thistles. Some grew corn, and
some took charge of sheep. Thus, in time, places far apart from
each other were settled, and towns were built; towns, indeed, we
call them to distinguish them from the champaign, but they are not
worthy of the name in comparison with the mighty cities of old
time.</p>
<p>There are many that have not more than fifty houses in the
enclosure, and perhaps no other station within a day's journey, and
the largest are but villages, reckoning by antiquity. For the most
part they have their own government, or had till recently, and thus
there grew up many provinces and kingdoms in the compass of what
was originally but one. Thus separated and divided, there came also
to be many races where in the first place was one people. Now, in
briefly recounting the principal divisions of men, I will commence
with those who are everywhere considered the lowest. These are the
Bushmen, who live wholly in the woods.</p>
<p>Even among the ancients, when every man, woman, and child could
exercise those arts which are now the special mark of nobility,
<i>i.e.</i> reading and writing, there was a degraded class of
persons who refused to avail themselves of the benefits of
civilization. They obtained their food by begging, wandering along
the highways, crouching around fires which they lit in the open,
clad in rags, and exhibiting countenances from which every trace of
self-respect had disappeared. These were the ancestors of the
present men of the bushes.</p>
<p>They took naturally to the neglected fields, and forming "camps"
as they call their tribes, or rather families, wandered to and fro,
easily subsisting upon roots and trapped game. So they live to this
day, having become extremely dexterous in snaring every species of
bird and animal, and the fishes of the streams. These latter they
sometimes poison with a drug or a plant (it is not known which),
the knowledge of which has been preserved among them since the days
of the ancients. The poison kills the fishes, and brings them to
the surface, when they can be collected by hundreds, but does not
injure them for eating.</p>
<p>Like the black wood-dogs, the Bushmen often in fits of savage
frenzy destroy thrice as much as they can devour, trapping deer in
wickerwork hedges, or pitfalls, and cutting the miserable animals
in pieces, for mere thirst of blood. The oxen and cattle in the
enclosures are occasionally in the same manner fearfully mutilated
by these wretches, sometimes for amusement, and sometimes in
vengeance for injuries done to them. Bushmen have no settled home,
cultivate no kind of corn or vegetable, keep no animals, not even
dogs, have no houses or huts, no boats or canoes, nothing that
requires the least intelligence or energy to construct.</p>
<p>Roaming to and fro without any apparent aim or object, or any
particular route, they fix their camp for a few days wherever it
suits their fancy, and again move on, no man knows why or whither.
It is this uncertainty of movement which makes them so dangerous.
To-day there may not be the least sign of any within miles of an
enclosure. In the night a "camp" may pass, slaughtering such cattle
as may have remained without the palisade, or killing the
unfortunate shepherd who has not got within the walls, and in the
morning they may be nowhere to be seen, having disappeared like
vermin. Face to face the Bushman is never to be feared; a whole
"camp" or tribal family will scatter if a traveler stumbles into
their midst. It is from behind a tree or under cover of night that
he deals his murderous blow.</p>
<p>A "camp" may consist of ten or twenty individuals, sometimes,
perhaps, of forty, or even fifty, of various ages, and is ruled by
the eldest, who is also the parent. He is absolute master of his
"camp", but has no power or recognition beyond it, so that how many
leaders there may be among them it is not possible even to guess.
Nor is the master known to them as king, or duke, nor has he any
title, but is simply the oldest or founder of the family. The
"camp" has no law, no established custom; events happen, and even
the master cannot be said to reign. When he becomes feeble, they
simply leave him to die.</p>
<p>They are depraved, and without shame, clad in sheep-skins
chiefly, if clad at all, or in such clothes as they have stolen.
They have no ceremonies whatever. The number of these "camps" must
be considerable, and yet the Bushman is seldom seen, nor do we very
often hear of their depredations, which is accounted for by the
extent of country they wander over. It is in severe winters that
the chief danger occurs; they then suffer from hunger and cold, and
are driven to the neighbourhood of the enclosures to steal. So
dexterous are they in slipping through the bushes, and slinking
among the reeds and osiers, that they will pass within a few yards
without discovering their presence, and the signs of their passage
can be detected only by the experienced hunter, and not always by
him.</p>
<p>It is observed that whatever mischief the Bushman commits, he
never sets fire to any ricks or buildings; the reason is because
his nature is to slink from the scene of his depredations, and
flame at once attracts people to the spot. Twice the occurrence of
a remarkably severe winter has caused the Bushmen to flock together
and act in an approach to concert in attacking the enclosures. The
Bushmen of the north, who were even more savage and brutal, then
came down, and were with difficulty repulsed from the walled
cities. In ordinary times we see very little of them. They are the
thieves, the human vermin of the woods.</p>
<p>Under the name of gipsies, those who are now often called Romany
and Zingari were well known to the ancients. Indeed, they boast
that their ancestry goes back so much farther than the oldest we
can claim, that the ancients themselves were but modern to them.
Even in that age of highest civilization, which immediately
preceded the present, they say (and there is no doubt of it) that
they preserved the blood of their race pure and untainted, that
they never dwelt under permanent roofs, nor bowed their knees to
the prevalent religion. They remained apart, and still continue
after civilization has disappeared, exactly the same as they were
before it commenced.</p>
<p>Since the change their numbers have greatly increased, and were
they not always at war with each other, it is possible that they
might go far to sweep the house people from the land. But there are
so many tribes, each with its king, queen, or duke, that their
power is divided, and their force melts away. The ruler of the
Bushman families is always a man, but among the gipsies a woman,
and even a young girl, often exercises supreme authority, but must
be of the sacred blood. These kings and dukes are absolute
autocrats within their tribe, and can order by a nod the
destruction of those who offend them. Habits of simplest obedience
being enjoined on the tribe from earliest childhood, such
executions are rare, but the right to command them is not for a
moment questioned.</p>
<p>Of the sorcerers, and particularly the sorceresses, among them,
all have heard, and, indeed, the places where they dwell seem full
of mystery and magic. They live in tents, and though they
constantly remove from district to district, one tribe never
clashes with or crosses another, because all have their especial
routes, upon which no intrusion is ever made. Some agriculture is
practiced, and flocks and herds are kept, but the work is entirely
done by the women. The men are always on horseback, or sleeping in
their tents.</p>
<p>Each tribe has its central camping-place, to which they return
at intervals after perhaps wandering for months, a certain number
of persons being left at home to defend it. These camps are often
situated in inaccessible positions, and well protected by
stockades. The territory which is acknowledged to belong to such a
camp is extremely limited; its mere environs only are considered
the actual property of the tribe, and a second can pitch its tents
with a few hundred yards. These stockades, in fact, are more like
store-houses than residences; each is a mere rendezvous.</p>
<p>The gipsies are everywhere, but their stockades are most
numerous in the south, along the sides of the green hills and
plains, and especially round Stonehenge, where, on the great open
plains, among the huge boulders, placed ages since in circles, they
perform strange ceremonies and incantations. They attack every
traveller, and every caravan or train of waggons which they feel
strong enough to master, but they do not murder the solitary
sleeping hunter or shepherd like the Bushmen. They will, indeed,
steal from him, but do not kill, except in fight. Once, now and
then, they have found their way into towns, when terrible massacres
have followed, for, when excited, the savage knows not how to
restrain himself.</p>
<p>Vengeance is their idol. If any community has injured or
affronted them, they never cease endeavouring to retaliate, and
will wipe it out in fire and blood generations afterwards. There
are towns which have thus been suddenly harried when the citizens
had forgotten that any cause of enmity existed. Vengeance is their
religion and their social law, which guides all their actions among
themselves. It is for this reason that they are continually at war,
duke with duke, and king with king. A deadly feud, too, has set
Bushman and gipsy at each other's throat, far beyond the memory of
man. The Romany looks on the Bushman as a dog, and slaughters him
as such. In turn, the despised human dog slinks in the darkness of
the night into the Romany's tent, and stabs his daughter or his
wife, for such is the meanness and cowardice of the Bushman that he
would always rather kill a woman than a man.</p>
<p>There is also a third class of men who are not true gipsies, but
have something of their character, though the gipsies will not
allow that they were originally half-breeds. Their habits are much
the same, except that they are foot men and rarely use horses, and
are therefore called the foot gipsies. The gipsy horse is really a
pony. Once only have the Romany combined to attack the house
people, driven, like the Bushmen, by an exceedingly severe winter,
against which they had no provision.</p>
<p>But, then, instead of massing their forces and throwing their
irresistible numbers upon one city or territory, all they would
agree to do was that, upon a certain day, each tribe should invade
the land nearest to it. The result was that they were, though with
trouble, repulsed. Until lately, no leader ventured to follow the
gipsies to their strongholds, for they were reputed invincible
behind their stockades. By infesting the woods and lying in ambush
they rendered communication between city and city difficult and
dangerous, except to bodies of armed men, and every waggon had to
be defended by troops.</p>
<p>The gipsies, as they roam, make little secret of their presence
(unless, of course, intent upon mischief), but light their fires by
day and night fearlessly. The Bushmen never light a fire by day,
lest the ascending smoke, which cannot be concealed, should betray
their whereabouts. Their fires are lit at night in hollows or
places well surrounded with thickets, and, that the flame may not
be seen, they will build screens of fir boughs or fern. When they
have obtained a good supply of hot wood coals, no more sticks are
thrown on, but these are covered with turf, and thus kept in long
enough for their purposes. Much of their meat they devour raw, and
thus do not need a fire so frequently as others.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap1-4" id="Chap1-4"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER IV<br/> THE INVADERS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Those who live by agriculture or in towns, and are descended
from the remnant of the ancients, are divided, as I have previously
said, into numerous provinces, kingdoms, and republics. In the
middle part of the country the cities are almost all upon the
shores of the Lake, or within a short distance of the water, and
there is therefore more traffic and communication between them by
means of vessels than is the case with inland towns, whose trade
must be carried on by caravans and waggons. These not only move
slowly, but are subject to be interrupted by the Romany and by the
banditti, or persons who, for moral or political crimes, have been
banished from their homes.</p>
<p>It is in the cities that cluster around the great central lake
that all the life and civilization of our day are found; but there
also begin those wars and social convulsions which cause so much
suffering. When was the Peninsula at peace? and when was there not
some mischief and change brewing in the republics? When was there
not a danger from the northern mainland?</p>
<p>Until recent years there was little knowledge of, and scarcely
any direct commerce or intercourse between, the central part and
the districts either of the extreme west or the north, and it is
only now that the north and east are becoming open to us; for at
the back of the narrow circle or cultivated land, the belt about
the Lake, there extend immense forests in every direction, through
which, till very lately, no practicable way had been cut. Even in
the more civilized central part it is not to this day easy to
travel, for at the barriers, as you approach the territories of
every prince, they demand your business and your papers; nor even
if you establish the fact that you are innocent of designs against
the State, shall you hardly enter without satisfying the greed of
the officials.</p>
<p>A fine is thus exacted at the gate of every province and
kingdom, and again at the gateways of the towns. The difference of
the coinage, such as it is, causes also great loss and trouble, for
the money of one kingdom (though passing current by command in that
territory) is not received at its nominal value in the next on
account of the alloy it contains. It is, indeed, in many kingdoms
impossible to obtain sterling money. Gold there is little or none
anywhere, but silver is the standard of exchange, and copper,
bronze, and brass, sometimes tin, are the metals with which the
greater number of the people transact their business.</p>
<p>Justice is corrupt, for where there is a king or a prince it
depends on the caprice of a tyrant, and where there is a republic
upon the shout of the crowd, so that many, if they think they may
be put on trial, rather than face the risk at once escape into the
woods. The League, though based ostensibly on principles the most
exalted and beneficial to humanity, is known to be perverted. The
members sworn to honour and the highest virtue are swayed by vile
motives, political hatreds, and private passions, and even by
money.</p>
<p>Men for ever trample upon men, each pushing to the front; nor is
there safety in remaining in retirement, since such are accused of
biding their time and of occult designs. Though the population of
these cities all counted together is not equal to the population
that once dwelt in a single second-rate city of the ancients, yet
how much greater are the bitterness and the struggle!</p>
<p>Yet not content with the bloodshed they themselves cause, the
tyrants have called in the aid of mercenary soldiers to assist
them. And, to complete the disgrace, those republics which proclaim
themselves the very home of patriotic virtues, have resorted to the
same means. Thus we see English cities kept in awe by troops of
Welshmen, Irish, and even the western Scots, who swarm in the
council-chambers of the republics, and, opening the doors of the
houses, help themselves to what they will. This, too, in the face
of the notorious fact that these nations have sworn to be avenged
upon us, that their vessels sail about the Lake committing direful
acts of piracy, and that twice already vast armies have swept along
threatening to entirely overwhelm the whole commonwealth.</p>
<p>What infatuation to admit bands of these same men into the very
strongholds and the heart of the land! As if upon the approach of
their countrymen they would remain true to the oaths they have
sworn for pay, and not rather admit them with open arms. No blame
can, upon a just consideration, be attributed to either of these
nations that endeavour to oppress us. For, as they point out, the
ancients from whom we are descended held them in subjection many
hundred years, and took from them all their liberties.</p>
<p>Thus the Welsh, or, as they call themselves, the Cymry, say that
the whole island was once theirs, and is theirs still by right of
inheritance. They were the original people who possessed it ages
before the arrival of those whom we call the ancients. Though they
were driven into the mountains of the far distant west, they never
forgot their language, ceased their customs, or gave up their
aspirations to recover their own. This is now their aim, and until
recently it seemed as if they were about to accomplish it. For they
held all that country anciently called Cornwall, having crossed
over the Severn, and marched down the southern shore. The rich land
of Devon, part of Dorset (all, indeed, that is inhabited), and the
most part of Somerset, acknowledged their rule. Worcester and
Hereford and Gloucester were theirs; I mean, of course, those parts
that are not forest.</p>
<p>Their outposts were pushed forward to the centre of
Leicestershire, and came down towards Oxford. But thereabouts they
met with the forces of which I will shortly speak. Then their
vessels every summer sailing from the Severn, came into the Lake,
and, landing wherever there was an opportunity, they destroyed all
things and carried off the spoil. Is it necessary to say more to
demonstrate the madness which possesses those princes and republics
which, in order to support their own tyranny, have invited bands of
these men into their very palaces and forts?</p>
<p>As they approached near what was once Oxford and is now Sypolis,
the armies of the Cymry came into collision with another of our
invaders, and thus their forward course to the south was checked.
The Irish, who had hitherto abetted them, turned round to defend
their own usurpations. They, too, say that in conquering and
despoiling my countrymen they are fulfilling a divine vengeance.
Their land of Ireland had been for centuries ground down with an
iron tyranny by our ancestors, who closed their lips with a muzzle,
and led them about with a bridle, as their poets say. But now the
hateful Saxons (for thus both they and the Welsh designate us) are
broken, and delivered over to them for their spoil.</p>
<p>It is not possible to deny many of the statements that they
make, but that should not prevent us from battling with might and
main against the threatened subjection. What crime can be greater
than the admission of such foreigners as the guards of our cities?
Now the Irish have their principal rendezvous and capital near to
the ancient city of Chester, which is upon the ocean, and at the
very top and angle of Wales. This is their great settlement, their
magazine and rallying-place, and thence their expeditions have
proceeded. It is a convenient port, and well opposite their native
land, from which reinforcements continually arrive, but the Welsh
have ever looked upon their possession of it with jealousy.</p>
<p>At the period when the Cymry had nearly penetrated to Sypolis or
Oxford, the Irish, on their part, had overrun all the cultivated
and inhabited country in a south and south-easterly line from
Chester, through Rutland to Norfolk and Suffolk, and even as far as
Luton. They would have spread to the north, but in that direction
they were met by the Scots, who had all Northumbria. When the Welsh
came near Sypolis, the Irish awoke to the position of affairs.</p>
<p>Sypolis is the largest and most important city upon the northern
shore of the Lake, and it is situated at the entrance to the neck
of land that stretches out to the straits. If the Welsh were once
well posted there, the Irish could never hope to find their way to
the rich and cultivated south, for it is just below Sypolis that
the Lake contracts, and forms a strait in one place but a furlong
wide. The two forces thus came into collision, and while they
fought and destroyed each other, Sypolis was saved. After which,
finding they were evenly matched, the Irish withdrew two days'
march northwards, and the Cymry as far westwards.</p>
<p>But now the Irish, sailing round the outside of Wales, came
likewise up through the Red Rocks, and so into the Lake, and in
their turn landing, harassed the cities. Often Welsh and Irish
vessels, intending to attack the same place, have discerned each
other approaching, and, turning from their proposed action, have
flown at each other's throats. The Scots have not harassed us in
the south much, being too far distant, and those that wander hither
come for pay, taking service as guards. They are, indeed, the
finest of men, and the hardiest to battle with. I had forgotten to
mention that it is possible the Irish might have pushed back the
Welsh, had not the kingdom of York suddenly reviving, by means
which shall be related, valiantly thrust out its masters, and fell
upon their rear.</p>
<p>But still these nations are always upon the verge and margin of
our world, and wait but an opportunity to rush in upon it. Our
countrymen groan under their yoke, and I say again that infamy
should be the portion of those rulers among us who have filled
their fortified places with mercenaries derived from such
sources.</p>
<p>The land, too, is weak, because of the multitude of bondsmen. In
the provinces and kingdoms round about the Lake there is hardly a
town where the slaves do not outnumber the free as ten to one. The
laws are framed for the object of reducing the greater part of the
people to servitude. For every offence the punishment is slavery,
and the offences are daily artificially increased, that the wealth
of the few in human beings may grow with them. If a man in his
hunger steal a loaf, he becomes a slave; that is, it is proclaimed
he must make good to the State the injury he has done it, and must
work out his trespass. This is not assessed as the value of the
loaf, nor supposed to be confined to the individual from whom it
was taken.</p>
<p>The theft is said to damage the State at large, because it
corrupts the morality of the commonwealth; it is as if the thief
had stolen a loaf, not from one, but from every member of the
State. Restitution must, therefore, be made to all, and the value
of the loaf returned in labour a thousandfold. The thief is the
bondsman of the State. But as the State cannot employ him, he is
leased out to those who will pay into the treasury of the prince
the money equivalent to the labour he is capable of performing.
Thus, under cover of the highest morality, the greatest iniquity is
perpetrated. For the theft of a loaf, the man is reduced to a
slave; then his wife and children, unable to support themselves,
become a charge to the State, that is, they beg in the public
ways.</p>
<p>This, too, forsooth, corrupts morality, and they likewise are
seized and leased out to any who like to take them. Nor can he or
they ever become free again, for they must repay to their
proprietor the sum he gave for them, and how can that be done,
since they receive no wages? For striking another, a man may be in
the same way, as they term it, forfeited to the State, and be sold
to the highest bidder. A stout brass wire is then twisted around
his left wrist loosely, and the ends soldered together. Then a bar
of iron being put through, a half turn is given to it, which forces
the wire sharply against the arm, causing it to fit tightly, often
painfully, and forms a smaller ring at the outside. By this smaller
ring a score of bondsmen may be seen strung together with a
rope.</p>
<p>To speak disrespectfully of the prince or his council, or of the
nobles, or of religion, to go out of the precincts without
permission, to trade without license, to omit to salute the great,
all these and a thousand others are crimes deserving of the brazen
bracelet. Were a man to study all day what he must do, and what he
must not do, to escape servitude, it would not be possible for him
to stir one step without becoming forfeit! And yet they
hypocritically say that these things are done for the sake of
public morality, and that there are not slaves (not permitting the
word to be used), and no man was ever sold.</p>
<p>It is, indeed, true that no man is sold in open market, he is
leased instead; and, by a refined hypocrisy, the owner of slaves
cannot sell them to another owner, but he can place them in the
hands of the notary, presenting them with their freedom, so far as
he is concerned. The notary, upon payment of a fine from the
purchaser, transfers them to him, and the larger part of the fine
goes to the prince. Debt alone under their laws must crowd the land
with slaves, for, as wages are scarcely known, a child from its
birth is often declared to be in debt. For its nourishment is drawn
from its mother, and the wretched mother is the wife of a retainer
who is fed by his lord. To such a degree is this tyranny carried!
If any owe a penny, his doom is sealed; he becomes a bondsman, and
thus the estates of the nobles are full of men who work during
their whole lives for the profit of others. Thus, too, the woods
are filled with banditti, for those who find an opportunity never
fail to escape, notwithstanding the hunt that is invariably made
for them, and the cruel punishment that awaits recapture. And
numbers, foreseeing that they must become bondsmen, before they are
proclaimed forfeit steal away by night, and live as they may in the
forests.</p>
<p>How, then, does any man remain free? Only by the favour of the
nobles, and only that he may amass wealth for them. The merchants,
and those who have license to trade by land or water, are all
protected by some noble house, to whom they pay heavily for
permission to live in their own houses. The principal tyrant is
supported by the nobles, that they in their turn may tyrannise over
the merchants, and they again over all the workmen of their shops
and bazaars.</p>
<p>Over their own servants (for thus they call the slaves, that the
word itself may not be used), who work upon their estates, the
nobles are absolute masters, and may even hang them upon the
nearest tree. And here I cannot but remark how strange it is,
first, that any man can remain a slave rather than die; and
secondly, how much stranger it is that any other man, himself a
slave, can be found to hunt down or to hang his fellow; yet the
tyrants never lack executioners. Their castles are crowded with
retainers who wreak their wills upon the defenceless. These
retainers do not wear the brazen bracelet; they are free. Are
there, then, no beggars? Yes, they sit at every corner, and about
the gates of the cities, asking for alms.</p>
<p>Though begging makes a man forfeit to the State, it is only when
he has thews and sinews, and can work. The diseased and aged, the
helpless and feeble, may break the law, and starve by the roadside,
because it profits no one to make them his slaves. And all these
things are done in the name of morality, and for the good of the
human race, as they constantly announce in their councils and
parliaments.</p>
<p>There are two reasons why the mercenaries have been called in;
first, because the princes found the great nobles so powerful, and
can keep them in check only by the aid of these foreigners; and
secondly, because the number of the outlaws in the woods has become
so great that the nobles themselves are afraid lest their slaves
should revolt, and, with the aid of the outlaws, overcome them.</p>
<p>Now the mark of a noble is that he can read and write. When the
ancients were scattered, the remnant that was left behind was, for
the most part, the ignorant and the poor. But among them there was
here and there a man who possessed some little education and force
of mind. At first there was no order; but after thirty years or so,
after a generation, some order grew up, and these men, then become
aged, were naturally chosen as leaders. They had, indeed, no actual
power then, no guards or armies; but the common folk, who had no
knowledge, came to them for decision of their disputes, for advice
what to do, for the pronouncement of some form of marriage, for the
keeping of some note of property, and to be united against a mutual
danger.</p>
<p>These men in turn taught their children to read and write,
wishing that some part of the wisdom of the ancients might be
preserved. They themselves wrote down what they knew, and these
manuscripts, transmitted to their children, were saved with care.
Some of them remain to this day. These children, growing to
manhood, took more upon them, and assumed higher authority as the
past was forgotten, and the original equality of all men lost in
antiquity. The small enclosed farms of their fathers became
enlarged to estates, the estates became towns, and thus, by
degrees, the order of the nobility was formed. As they intermarried
only among themselves, they preserved a certain individuality. At
this day a noble is at once known, no matter how coarsely he may be
dressed, or how brutal his habits, by his delicacy of feature, his
air of command, even by his softness of skin and fineness of
hair.</p>
<p>Still the art of reading and writing is scrupulously imparted to
all their legitimate offspring, and scrupulously confined to them
alone. It is true that they do not use it except on rare occasions
when necessity demands, being wholly given over to the chase, to
war, and politics, but they retain the knowledge. Indeed, were a
noble to be known not to be able to read and write, the prince
would at once degrade him, and the sentence would be upheld by the
entire caste. No other but the nobles are permitted to acquire
these arts; if any attempt to do so, they are enslaved and
punished. But none do attempt; of what avail would it be to
them?</p>
<p>All knowledge is thus retained in the possession of the nobles;
they do not use it, but the physicians, for instance, who are
famous, are so because by favour of some baron, they have learned
receipts in the ancient manuscripts which have been mentioned. One
virtue, and one only, adorns this exclusive caste; they are
courageous to the verge of madness. I had almost omitted to state
that the merchants know how to read and write, having special
license and permits to do so, without which they may not
correspond. There are few books, and still fewer to read them; and
these all in manuscript, for though the way to print is not lost,
it is not employed since no one wants books.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap1-5" id="Chap1-5"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER V<br/> THE LAKE</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>There now only remains the geography of our country to be
treated of before the history is commenced. Now the most striking
difference between the country as we know it and as it was known to
the ancients is the existence of the great Lake in the centre of
the island. From the Red Rocks (by the Severn) hither, the most
direct route a galley can follow is considered to be about 200
miles in length, and it is a journey which often takes a week even
for a vessel well manned, because the course, as it turns round the
islands, faces so many points of the compass, and therefore the
oarsmen are sure to have to labour in the teeth of the wind, no
matter which way it blows.</p>
<p>Many parts are still unexplored, and scarce anything known of
their extent, even by repute. Until Felix Aquila's time, the
greater portion, indeed, had not even a name. Each community was
well acquainted with the bay before its own city, and with the
route to the next, but beyond that they were ignorant, and had no
desire to learn. Yet the Lake cannot really be so long and broad as
it seems, for the country could not contain it. The length is
increased, almost trebled, by the islands and shoals, which will
not permit of navigation in a straight line. For the most part,
too, they follow the southern shore of the mainland, which is
protected by a fringe of islets and banks from the storms which
sweep over the open waters.</p>
<p>Thus rowing along round the gulfs and promontories, their voyage
is thrice prolonged, but rendered nearly safe from the waves, which
rise with incredible celerity before the gales. The slow ships of
commerce, indeed, are often days in traversing the distance between
one port and another, for they wait for the wind to blow abaft, and
being heavy, deeply laden, built broad and flat-bottomed for
shallows, and bluff at the bows, they drift like logs of timber. In
canoes the hunters, indeed, sometimes pass swiftly from one place
to another, venturing farther out to sea than the ships. They could
pass yet more quickly were it not for the inquisition of the
authorities at every city and port, who not only levy dues and fees
for the treasury of the prince, and for their own rapacious
desires, but demand whence the vessel comes, to whom she belongs,
and whither she is bound, so that no ship can travel rapidly unless
so armed as to shake off these inquisitors.</p>
<p>The canoes, therefore, travel at night and in calm weather many
miles away from the shore, and thus escape, or slip by daylight
among the reedy shallows, sheltered by the flags and willows from
view. The ships of commerce haul up to the shore towards evening,
and the crews, disembarking, light their fires and cook their food.
There are, however, one or two gaps, as it were, in their usual
course which they cannot pass in this leisurely manner; where the
shore is exposed and rocky, or too shallow, and where they must
reluctantly put forth, and sail from one horn of the land to the
other.</p>
<p>The Lake is also divided into two unequal portions by the
straits of White Horse, where vessels are often weather-bound, and
cannot make way against the wind, which sets a current through the
narrow channel. There is no tide; the sweet waters do not ebb and
flow; but while I thus discourse, I have forgotten to state how
they came to fill the middle of the country. Now, the philosopher
Silvester, and those who seek after marvels, say that the passage
of the dark body through space caused an immense volume of fresh
water to fall in the shape of rain, and also that the growth of the
forests distilled rain from the clouds. Let us leave these
speculations to dreamers, and recount what is known to be.</p>
<p>For there is no tradition among the common people, who are
extremely tenacious of such things, of any great rainfall, nor is
there any mention of floods in the ancient manuscripts, nor is
there any larger fall of rain now than was formerly the case. But
the Lake itself tells us how it was formed, or as nearly as we
shall ever know, and these facts were established by the
expeditions lately sent out.</p>
<p>At the eastern extremity the Lake narrows, and finally is lost
in the vast marshes which cover the site of the ancient London.
Through these, no doubt, in the days of the old world there flowed
the river Thames. By changes of the sea level and the sand that was
brought up there must have grown great banks, which obstructed the
stream. I have formerly mentioned the vast quantities of timber,
the wreckage of towns and bridges which was carried down by the
various rivers, and by none more so than by the Thames. These added
to the accumulation, which increased the faster because the
foundations of the ancient bridges held it like piles driven in for
the purpose. And before this the river had become partially choked
from the cloacæ of the ancient city which poured into it
through enormous subterranean aqueducts and drains.</p>
<p>After a time all these shallows and banks became well matted
together by the growth of weeds, of willows, and flags, while the
tide, ebbing lower at each drawing back, left still more mud and
sand. Now it is believed that when this had gone on for a time, the
waters of the river, unable to find a channel, began to overflow up
into the deserted streets, and especially to fill the underground
passages and drains, of which the number and extent was beyond all
the power of words to describe. These, by the force of the water,
were burst up, and the houses fell in.</p>
<p>For this marvellous city, of which such legends are related, was
after all only of brick, and when the ivy grew over and trees and
shrubs sprang up, and, lastly, the waters underneath burst in, this
huge metropolis was soon overthrown. At this day all those parts
which were built upon low ground are marshes and swamps. Those
houses that were upon high ground were, of course, like the other
towns, ransacked of all they contained by the remnant that was
left; the iron, too, was extracted. Trees growing up by them in
time cracked the walls, and they fell in. Trees and bushes covered
them; ivy and nettles concealed the crumbling masses of brick.</p>
<p>The same was the case with the lesser cities and towns whose
sites are known in the woods. For though many of our present towns
bear the ancient names, they do not stand upon the ancient sites,
but are two or three, and sometimes ten miles distant. The founders
carried with them the name of their original residence.</p>
<p>Thus the low-lying parts of the mighty city of London became
swamps, and the higher grounds were clad with bushes. The very
largest of the buildings fell in, and there was nothing visible but
trees and hawthorns on the upper lands, and willows, flags, reeds,
and rushes on the lower. These crumbling ruins still more choked
the stream, and almost, if not quite, turned it back. If any water
ooze past, it is not perceptible, and there is no channel through
to the salt ocean. It is a vast stagnant swamp, which no man dare
enter, since death would be his inevitable fate.</p>
<p>There exhales from this oozy mass so fatal a vapour that no
animal can endure it. The black water bears a greenish-brown
floating scum, which for ever bubbles up from the putrid mud of the
bottom. When the wind collects the miasma, and, as it were, presses
it together, it becomes visible as a low cloud which hangs over the
place. The cloud does not advance beyond the limit of the marsh,
seeming to stay there by some constant attraction; and well it is
for us that it does not, since at such times when the vapour is
thickest, the very wildfowl leave the reeds, and fly from the
poison. There are no fishes, neither can eels exist in the mud, nor
even newts. It is dead.</p>
<p>The flags and reeds are coated with slime and noisome to the
touch; there is one place where even these do not grow, and where
there is nothing but an oily liquid, green and rank. It is plain
there are no fishes in the water, for herons do not go thither, nor
the kingfishers, not one of which approaches the spot. They say the
sun is sometimes hidden by the vapour when it is thickest, but I do
not see how any can tell this, since they could not enter the
cloud, as to breathe it when collected by the wind is immediately
fatal. For all the rottenness of a thousand years and of many
hundred millions of human beings is there festering under the
stagnant water, which has sunk down into and penetrated the earth,
and floated up to the surface the contents of the buried
cloacæ.</p>
<p>Many scores of men have, I fear, perished in the attempt to
enter this fearful place, carried on by their desire of gain. For
it can scarcely be disputed that untold treasures lie hidden
therein, but guarded by terrors greater than fiery serpents. These
have usually made their endeavours to enter in severe and continued
frost, or in the height of a drought. Frost diminishes the power of
the vapour, and the marshes can then, too, be partially traversed,
for there is no channel for a boat. But the moment anything be
moved, whether it be a bush, or a willow, even a flag, if the ice
be broken, the pestilence rises yet stronger. Besides which, there
are portions which never freeze, and which may be approached
unawares, or a turn of the wind may drift the gas towards the
explorer.</p>
<p>In the midst of summer, after long heat, the vapour rises, and
is in a degree dissipated into the sky, and then by following
devious ways an entrance may be effected, but always at the cost of
illness. If the explorer be unable to quit the spot before night,
whether in summer or winter, his death is certain. In the earlier
times some bold and adventurous men did indeed succeed in getting a
few jewels, but since then the marsh has become more dangerous, and
its pestilent character, indeed, increases year by year, as the
stagnant water penetrates deeper. So that now for very many years
no such attempts have been made.</p>
<p>The extent of these foul swamps is not known with certainty, but
it is generally believed that they are, at the widest, twenty miles
across, and that they reach in a winding line for nearly forty. But
the outside parts are much less fatal; it is only the interior
which is avoided.</p>
<p>Towards the Lake the sand thrown up by the waves has long since
formed a partial barrier between the sweet water and the stagnant,
rising up to within a few feet of the surface. This barrier is
overgrown with flags and reeds, where it is shallow. Here it is
possible to sail along the sweet water within an arrow-shot of the
swamp. Nor, indeed, would the stagnant mingle with the sweet, as is
evident at other parts of the swamp, where streams flow side by
side with the dark or reddish water; and there are pools, upon one
side of which the deer drink, while the other is not frequented
even by rats.</p>
<p>The common people aver that demons reside in these swamps; and,
indeed, at night fiery shapes are seen, which, to the ignorant, are
sufficient confirmation of such tales. The vapour, where it is most
dense, takes fire, like the blue flame of spirits, and these
flaming clouds float to and fro, and yet do not burn the reeds. The
superstitious trace in them the forms of demons and winged fiery
serpents, and say that white spectres haunt the margin of the marsh
after dusk. In a lesser degree, the same thing has taken place with
other ancient cities. It is true that there are not always swamps,
but the sites are uninhabitable because of the emanations from the
ruins. Therefore they are avoided. Even the spot where a single
house has been known to have existed, is avoided by the hunters in
the woods.</p>
<p>They say when they are stricken with ague or fever, that they
must have unwittingly slept on the site of an ancient habitation.
Nor can the ground be cultivated near the ancient towns, because it
causes fever; and thus it is that, as I have already stated, the
present places of the same name are often miles distant from the
former locality. No sooner does the plough or the spade turn up an
ancient site than those who work there are attacked with illness.
And thus the cities of the old world, and their houses and
habitations, are deserted and lost in the forest. If the hunters,
about to pitch their camp for the night, should stumble on so much
as a crumbling brick or a fragment of hewn stone, they at once
remove at least a bowshot away.</p>
<p>The eastward flow of the Thames being at first checked, and
finally almost or quite stopped by the formation of these banks,
the water turned backwards as it were, and began to cover hitherto
dry land. And this, with the other lesser rivers and brooks that no
longer had any ultimate outlet, accounts for the Lake, so far as
this side of the country is concerned.</p>
<p>At the western extremity the waters also contract between the
steep cliffs called the Red Rocks, near to which once existed the
city of Bristol. Now the Welsh say, and the tradition of those who
dwell in that part of the country bears them out, that in the time
of the old world the River Severn flowed past the same spot, but
not between these cliffs. The great river Severn coming down from
the north, with England on one bank and Wales upon the other,
entered the sea, widening out as it did so. Just before it reached
the sea, another lesser river, called the Avon, the upper part of
which is still there, joined it passing through this cleft in the
rocks.</p>
<p>But when the days of the old world ended in the twilight of the
ancients, as the salt ocean fell back and its level became lower,
vast sandbanks were disclosed, which presently extended across the
most part of the Severn river. Others, indeed, think that the salt
ocean did not sink, but that the land instead was lifted higher.
Then they say that the waves threw up an immense quantity of
shingle and sand, and that thus these banks were formed. All that
we know with certainty, however, is, that across the estuary of the
Severn there rose a broad barrier of beach, which grew wider with
the years, and still increases westwards. It is as if the ocean
churned up its floor and cast it forth upon the strand.</p>
<p>Now when the Severn was thus stayed yet more effectually than
the Thames, in the first place it also flowed backwards as it were,
till its overflow mingled with the reflux of the Thames. Thus the
inland sea of fresh water was formed; though Silvester hints (what
is most improbable) that the level of the land sank and formed a
basin. After a time, when the waters had risen high enough, since
all water must have an outlet somewhere, the Lake, passing over the
green country behind the Red Rocks, came pouring through the
channel of the Avon.</p>
<p>Then, farther down, it rose over the banks which were lowest
there, and thus found its way over a dam into the sea. Now when the
tide of the ocean is at its ebb, the waters of the Lake rush over
these banks with so furious a current that no vessel can either go
down or come up. If they attempted to go down, they would be
swamped by the meeting of the waves; if they attempted to come up,
the strongest gale that blows could not force them against the
stream. As the tide gradually returns, however, the level of the
ocean rises to the level of the Lake, the outward flow of water
ceases, and there is even a partial inward flow of the tide which,
at its highest, reaches to the Red Rocks. At this state of the
tide, which happens twice in a day and night, vessels can enter or
go forth.</p>
<p>The Irish ships, of which I have spoken, thus come into the
Lake, waiting outside the bar till the tide lifts them over. The
Irish ships, being built to traverse the ocean from their country,
are large and stout and well manned, carrying from thirty to fifty
men. The Welsh ships, which come down from that inlet of the Lake
which follows the ancient course of the Severn, are much smaller
and lighter, as not being required to withstand the heavy seas.
They carry but fifteen or twenty men each, but then they are more
numerous. The Irish ships, on account of their size and draught, in
sailing about the sweet waters, cannot always haul on shore at
night, nor follow the course of the ships of burden between the
fringe of islands and the strand.</p>
<p>They have often to stay in the outer and deeper waters; but the
Welsh boats come in easily at all parts of the coast, so that no
place is safe against them. The Welsh have ever been most jealous
of the Severn, and will on no account permit so much as a canoe to
enter it. So that whether it be a narrow creek, or whether there be
wide reaches, or what the shores may be like, we are ignorant. And
this is all that is with certainty known concerning the origin of
the inland sea of sweet water, excluding all that superstition and
speculation have advanced, and setting down nothing but ascertained
facts.</p>
<p>A beautiful sea it is, clear as crystal, exquisite to drink,
abounding with fishes of every kind, and adorned with green
islands. There is nothing more lovely in the world than when, upon
a calm evening, the sun goes down across the level and gleaming
water, where it is so wide that the eye can but just distinguish a
low and dark cloud, as it were, resting upon the horizon, or
perhaps, looking lengthways, cannot distinguish any ending to the
expanse. Sometimes it is blue, reflecting the noonday sky;
sometimes white from the clouds; again green and dark as the wind
rises and the waves roll.</p>
<p>Storms, indeed, come up with extraordinary swiftness, for which
reason the ships, whenever possible, follow the trade route, as it
is called, behind the islands, which shelter them like a protecting
reef. They drop equally quickly, and thus it is not uncommon for
the morning to be calm, the midday raging in waves dashing
resistlessly upon the beach, and the evening still again. The
Irish, who are accustomed to the salt ocean, say, in the suddenness
of its storms and the shifting winds, it is more dangerous than the
sea itself. But then there are almost always islands, behind which
a vessel can be sheltered.</p>
<p>Beneath the surface of the Lake there must be concealed very
many ancient towns and cities, of which the names are lost.
Sometimes the anchors bring up even now fragments of rusty iron and
old metal, or black beams of timber. It is said, and with
probability, that when the remnant of the ancients found the water
gradually encroaching (for it rose very slowly), as they were
driven back year by year, they considered that in time they would
be all swept away and drowned. But after extending to its present
limits the Lake rose no farther, not even in the wettest seasons,
but always remains the same. From the position of certain quays we
know that it has thus remained for the last hundred years at
least.</p>
<p>Never, as I observed before, was there so beautiful an expanse
of water. How much must we sorrow that it has so often proved only
the easiest mode of bringing the miseries of war to the doors of
the unoffending! Yet men are never weary of sailing to and fro upon
it, and most of the cities of the present time are upon its shore.
And in the evening we walk by the beach, and from the rising
grounds look over the waters, as if to gaze upon their loveliness
were reward to us for the labour of the day.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Part_II" id="Part_II"></SPAN>
<h2>Part II<br/> WILD ENGLAND</h2>
<br/>
<SPAN name="Chap2-1" id="Chap2-1"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER I<br/> SIR FELIX</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>On a bright May morning, the sunlight, at five o'clock, was
pouring into a room which face the east at the ancestral home of
the Aquilas. In this room Felix, the eldest of the three sons of
the Baron, was sleeping. The beams passed over his head, and lit up
a square space on the opposite whitewashed wall, where, in the
midst of the brilliant light, hung an ivory cross. There were only
two panes of glass in the window, each no more than two or three
inches square, the rest of the window being closed by strong oaken
shutters, thick enough to withstand the stroke of an arrow.</p>
<p>In the daytime one of these at least would have been thrown open
to admit air and light. They did not quite meet, and a streak of
sunshine, in addition to that which came through the tiny panes,
entered at the chink. Only one window in the house contained more
than two such panes (it was in the Baroness's sitting-room), and
most of them had none at all. The glass left by the ancients in
their dwellings had long since been used up or broken, and the
fragments that remained were too precious to be put in ordinary
rooms. When larger pieces were discovered, they were taken for the
palaces of the princes, and even these were but sparingly supplied,
so that the saying "he has glass in his window" was equivalent to
"he belongs to the upper ranks".</p>
<p>On the recess of the window was an inkstand, which had been
recently in use, for a quill lay beside it, and a sheet of
parchment partly covered with writing. The ink was thick and very
dark, made of powdered charcoal, leaving a slightly raised writing,
which could be perceived by the finger on rubbing it lightly over.
Beneath the window on the bare floor was an open chest, in which
were several similar parchments and books, and from which the sheet
on the recess had evidently been taken. This chest, though small,
was extremely heavy and strong, being dug out with the chisel and
gouge from a solid block of oak. Except a few parallel grooves,
there was no attempt at ornamentation upon it. The lid, which had
no hinges, but lifted completely off, was tilted against the wall.
It was, too, of oak some inches thick, and fitted upon the chest by
a kind of dovetailing at the edges.</p>
<p>Instead of a lock, the chest was fastened by a lengthy thong of
oxhide, which now lay in a coil on the floor. Bound round and
round, twisted and intertangled, and finally tied with a special
and secret knot (the ends being concealed), the thong of leather
secured the contents of the chest from prying eyes or thievish
hands. With axe or knife, of course, the knot might easily have
been severed, but no one could obtain access to the room except the
retainers of the house, and which of them, even if unfaithful,
would dare to employ such means in view of the certain punishment
that must follow? It would occupy hours to undo the knot, and then
it could not be tied again in exactly the same fashion, so that the
real use of the thong was to assure the owner that his treasures
had not been interfered with in his absence. Such locks as were
made were of the clumsiest construction. They were not so difficult
to pick as the thong to untie, and their expense, or rather the
difficulty of getting a workman who could manufacture them,
confined their use to the heads of great houses. The Baron's chest
was locked, and his alone, in the dwelling.</p>
<p>Besides the parchments which were nearest the top, as most in
use, there were three books, much worn and decayed, which had been
preserved, more by accident than by care, from the libraries of the
ancients. One was an abridged history of Rome, the other a similar
account of English history, the third a primer of science or
knowledge; all three, indeed, being books which, among the
ancients, were used for teaching children, and which, by the men of
those days, would have been cast aside with contempt.</p>
<p>Exposed for years in decaying houses, rain and mildew had
spotted and stained their pages; the covers had rotted away these
hundred years, and were now supplied by a broad sheet of limp
leather with wide margins far overlapping the edges; many of the
pages were quite gone, and others torn by careless handling. The
abridgment of Roman history had been scorched by a forest fire, and
the charred edges of the leaves had dropped away in semicircular
holes. Yet, by pondering over these, Felix had, as it were,
reconstructed much of the knowledge which was the common (and
therefore unvalued) possession of all when they were printed.</p>
<p>The parchments contained his annotations, and the result of his
thought; they were also full of extracts from decaying volumes
lying totally neglected in the houses of other nobles. Most of
these were of extreme antiquity, for when the ancients departed,
the modern books which they had composed being left in the decaying
houses at the mercy of the weather, rotted, or were destroyed by
the frequent grass fires. But those that had been preserved by the
ancients in museums escaped for a while, and some of these yet
remained in lumber-rooms and corners, whence they were occasionally
dragged forth by the servants for greater convenience in lighting
the fires. The young nobles, entirely devoted to the chase, to love
intrigues, and war, overwhelmed Felix Aquila with ridicule when
they found him poring over these relics, and being of a proud and
susceptible spirit, they so far succeeded that he abandoned the
open pursuit of such studies, and stole his knowledge by fitful
glances when there was no one near. As among the ancients learning
was esteemed above all things, so now, by a species of contrast, it
was of all things the most despised.</p>
<p>Under the books, in one corner of the chest, was a leather bag
containing four golden sovereigns, such as were used by the
ancients, and eighteen pieces of modern silver money, the debased
shillings of the day, not much more than half of which was silver
and the rest alloy. The gold coins had been found while digging
holes for the posts of a new stockade, and by the law should have
been delivered to the prince's treasury. All the gold discovered,
whether in the form of coin or jewellery, was the property of the
Prince, who was supposed to pay for its value in currency.</p>
<p>As the actual value of the currency was only half of its nominal
value (and sometimes less), the transaction was greatly in favour
of the treasury. Such was the scarcity of gold that the law was
strictly enforced, and had there been the least suspicion of the
fact, the house would have been ransacked from the cellars to the
roof. Imprisonment and fine would have been the inevitable fate of
Felix, and the family would very probably have suffered for the
fault of one of its members. But independent and determined to the
last degree, Felix ran any risk rather than surrender that which he
had found, and which he deemed his own. This unbending independence
and pride of spirit, together with scarce concealed contempt for
others, had resulted in almost isolating him from the youth of his
own age, and had caused him to be regarded with dislike by the
elders. He was rarely, if ever, asked to join the chase, and still
more rarely invited to the festivities and amusements provided in
adjacent houses, or to the grander entertainments of the higher
nobles. Too quick to take offence where none was really intended,
he fancied that many bore him ill-will who had scarcely given him a
passing thought. He could not forgive the coarse jokes uttered upon
his personal appearance by men of heavier build, who despised so
slender a stripling.</p>
<p>He would rather be alone than join their company, and would not
compete with them in any of their sports, so that, when his absence
from the arena was noticed, it was attributed to weakness or
cowardice. These imputations stung him deeply, driving him to brood
within himself. He was never seen in the courtyards or ante-rooms
at the palace, nor following in the train of the Prince, as was the
custom with the youthful nobles. The servility of the court angered
and disgusted him; the eagerness of strong men to carry a cushion
or fetch a dog annoyed him.</p>
<p>There were those who observed this absence from the crowd in the
ante-rooms. In the midst of so much intrigue and continual striving
for power, designing men, on the one hand, were ever on the alert
for what they imagined would prove willing instruments; and on the
other, the Prince's councillors kept a watchful eye on the
dispositions of every one of the least consequence; so that,
although but twenty-five, Felix was already down in two lists, the
one, at the palace, of persons whose views, if not treasonable,
were doubtful, and the other, in the hands of a possible pretender,
as a discontented and therefore useful man. Felix was entirely
ignorant that he had attracted so much observation. He supposed
himself simply despised and ignored; he cherished no treason, had
not the slightest sympathy with any pretender, held totally aloof
from intrigue, and his reveries, if they were ambitious, concerned
only himself.</p>
<p>But the most precious of the treasures in the chest were eight
or ten small sheets of parchment, each daintily rolled and fastened
with a ribbon, letters from Aurora Thyma, who had also given him
the ivory cross on the wall. It was of ancient workmanship, a relic
of the old world. A compass, a few small tools (valuable because
preserved for so many years, and not now to be obtained for any
consideration), and a magnifying glass, a relic also of the
ancients, completed the contents of the chest.</p>
<p>Upon a low table by the bedstead were a flint and steel and
tinder, and an earthenware oil lamp, not intended to be carried
about. There, too, lay his knife, with a buckhorn hilt, worn by
everyone in the belt, and his forester's axe, a small tool, but
extremely useful in the woods, without which, indeed, progress was
often impossible. These were in the belt, which, as he undressed,
he had cast upon the table, together with his purse, in which were
about a dozen copper coins, not very regular in shape, and stamped
on one side only. The table was formed of two short hewn planks,
scarcely smoothed, raised on similar planks (on edge) at each end,
in fact, a larger form.</p>
<p>From a peg driven into the wall hung a disc of brass by a thin
leathern lace; this disc, polished to the last degree, answered as
a mirror. The only other piece of furniture, if so it could be
called, was a block of wood at the side of the table, used as a
chair. In the corner, between the table and the window, stood a
long yew bow, and a quiver full of arrows ready for immediate use,
besides which three or four sheaves lay on the floor. A crossbow
hung on a wooden peg; the bow was of wood, and, therefore, not very
powerful; bolts and square-headed quarrels were scattered
carelessly on the floor under it.</p>
<p>Six or seven slender darts used for casting with the hand, as
javelins, stood in another corner by the door, and two stouter boar
spears. By the wall a heap of nets lay in apparent confusion, some
used for partridges, some of coarse twine for bush-hens, another,
lying a little apart, for fishes. Near these the component parts of
two turkey-traps were strewn about, together with a small round
shield or targe, such as are used by swordsmen, snares of wire,
and, in an open box, several chisels, gouges, and other tools.</p>
<p>A blowtube was fastened to three pegs, so that it might not
warp, a hunter's horn hung from another, and on the floor were a
number of arrows in various stages of manufacture, some tied to the
straightening rod, some with the feathers already attached, and
some hardly shaped from the elder or aspen log. A heap of skins
filled the third corner, and beside them were numerous stag's
horns, and two of the white cow, but none yet of the much dreaded
and much desired white bull. A few peacock's feathers were there
also, rare and difficult to get, and intended for Aurora. Round one
footpost of the bed was a long coil of thin hide, a lasso, and on
another was suspended an iron cap, or visorless helmet.</p>
<p>There was no sword or lance. Indeed, of all these weapons and
implements, none seemed in use, to judge by the dust that had
gathered upon them, and the rusted edges, except the bow and
crossbow and one of the boar spears. The bed itself was very low,
framed of wood, thick and solid; the clothes were of the coarsest
linen and wool; there were furs for warmth in winter, but these
were not required in May. There was no carpet, nor any substitute
for it; the walls were whitewashed, ceiling there was none, the
worm-eaten rafters were visible, and the roof tree. But on the
table was a large earthenware bowl, full of meadow orchids,
blue-bells, and a bunch of may in flower.</p>
<p>His hat, wide in the brim, lay on the floor; his doublet was on
the wooden block or seat, with the long tight-fitting trousers,
which showed every muscle of the limb, and by them high shoes of
tanned but unblacked leather. His short cloak hung on a wooden peg
against the door, which was fastened with a broad bolt of oak. The
parchment in the recess of the window at which he had been working
just before retiring was covered with rough sketches, evidently
sections of a design for a ship or galley propelled by oars.</p>
<p>The square spot of light upon the wall slowly moved as the sun
rose higher, till the ivory cross was left in shadow, but still the
slumberer slept on, heedless, too, of the twittering of the
swallows under the eaves, and the call of the cuckoo not far
distant.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-2" id="Chap2-2"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER II<br/> THE HOUSE OF AQUILA</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Presently there came the sound of a creaking axle, which grew
louder and louder as the waggon drew nearer, till it approached a
shriek. The sleeper moved uneasily, but recognising the noise even
in his dreams, did not wake. The horrible sounds stopped; there was
the sound of voices, as if two persons, one without and one within
the wall, were hailing each other; a gate swung open, and the
waggon came past under the very window of the bedroom. Even habit
could not enable Felix to entirely withstand so piercing a noise
when almost in his ears. He sat up a minute, and glanced at the
square of light on the wall to guess the time by its position.</p>
<p>In another minute or two the squeaking of the axle ceased, as
the waggon reached the storehouses, and he immediately returned to
the pillow. Without, and just beneath the window, there ran a road
or way, which in part divided the enclosure into two portions; the
dwelling-house and its offices being on one side, the granaries and
storehouses on the other. But a few yards to the left of his room,
a strong gate in the enclosing wall gave entrance to this roadway.
It was called the Maple Gate, because a small maple tree grew near
outside. The wall, which surrounded the whole place at a distance
of eight or ten yards from the buildings, was of brick, and about
nine feet high, with a ditch without.</p>
<p>It was partly embattled, and partly loopholed, and a banquette
of earth rammed hard ran all round inside, so that the defenders
might discharge darts or arrows through the embrasures, and step
down out of sight to prepare a fresh supply. At each corner there
was a large platform, where a considerable number of men could
stand and command the approaches; there were, however, no bastions
or flanking towers. On the roof of the dwelling-house a similar
platform had been prepared, protected by a parapet; from which
height the entire enclosure could be overlooked.</p>
<p>Another platform, though at a less height, was on the roof of
the retainers' lodgings, so placed as especially to command the
second gate. Entering by the Maple Gate, the dwelling-house was on
the right hand, and the granaries and general storehouses on the
left, the latter built on three sides of a square. Farther on, on
the same side, were the stables, and near them the forge and
workshops. Beyond these, again, were the lodgings of the retainers
and labourers, near which, in the corner, was the South Gate, from
which the South Road led to the cattle-pens and farms, and out to
the south.</p>
<p>Upon the right hand, after the dwelling-house, and connected
with it, came the steward's stores, where the iron tools and
similar valuable articles of metal were kept. Then, after a covered
passage-way, the kitchen and general hall, under one roof with the
house. The house fronted in the opposite direction to the roadway;
there was a narrow green lawn between it and the enceinte, or wall,
and before the general hall and kitchens a gravelled court. This
was parted from the lawn by palings, so that the house folk enjoyed
privacy, and yet were close to their servitors. The place was
called the Old House, for it dated back to the time of the
ancients, and the Aquilas were proud of the simple designation of
their fortified residence.</p>
<p>Felix's window was almost exactly opposite the entrance to the
storehouse or granary yard, so that the waggon, after passing it,
had to go but a little distance, and then, turning to the left, was
drawn up before the doors of the warehouse. This waggon was low,
built for the carriage of goods only, of hewn plank scarcely
smooth, and the wheels were solid; cut, in fact, from the butt of
an elm tree. Unless continually greased the squeaking of such
wheels is terrible, and the carters frequently forgot their
grease-horns.</p>
<p>Much of the work of the farm, such as the carting of hay and
corn in harvest-time, was done upon sleds; the waggons (there were
but few of them) being reserved for longer journeys on the rough
roads. This waggon, laden with wool, some of the season's clip, had
come in four or five miles from an out-lying cot, or sheep-pen, at
the foot of the hills. In the buildings round the granary yard
there were stored not only the corn and flour required for the
retainers (who might at any moment become a besieged garrison), but
the most valuable products of the estate, the wool, hides, and
tanned leather from the tan-pits, besides a great quantity of bacon
and salt beef; indeed, every possible article that could be
needed.</p>
<p>These buildings were put together with wooden pins, on account
of the scarcity of iron, and were all (dwelling-houses included)
roofed with red tile. Lesser houses, cottages, and sheds at a
distance were thatched, but in an enclosure tiles were necessary,
lest, in case of an attack, fire should be thrown.</p>
<p>Half an hour later, at six o'clock, the watchman blew his horn
as loudly as possible for some two or three minutes, the hollow
sound echoing through the place. He took the time by the sundial on
the wall, it being a summer morning; in winter he was guided by the
position of the stars, and often, when sun or stars were obscured,
went by guess. The house horn was blown thrice a day; at six in the
morning, as a signal that the day had begun, at noon as a signal
for dinner, at six in the afternoon as a signal that the day
(except in harvest-time) was over. The watchmen went their round
about the enclosure all night long, relieved every three hours,
armed with spears, and attended by mastiffs. By day one sufficed,
and his station was then usually (though not always) on the highest
part of the roof.</p>
<p>The horn re-awoke Felix; it was the note by which he had been
accustomed to rise for years. He threw open the oaken shutters, and
the sunlight and the fresh breeze of the May morning came freely
into the room. There was now the buzz of voices without, men
unloading the wool, men at the workshops and in the granaries, and
others waiting at the door of the steward's store for the tools,
which he handed out to them. Iron being so scarce, tools were a
temptation, and were carefully locked up each night, and given out
again in the morning.</p>
<p>Felix went to the ivory cross and kissed it in affectionate
recollection of Aurora, and then looked towards the open window, in
the pride and joy of youth turning to the East, the morning, and
the light. Before he had half dressed there came a knock and then
an impatient kick at the door. He unbarred it, and his brother
Oliver entered. Oliver had been for his swim in the river. He
excelled in swimming, as, indeed, in every manly exercise, being as
active and energetic as Felix was outwardly languid.</p>
<p>His room was only across the landing, his door just opposite. It
also was strewn with implements and weapons. But there was a far
greater number of tools; he was an expert and artistic workman, and
his table and his seat, unlike the rude blocks in Felix's room,
were tastefully carved. His seat, too, had a back, and he had even
a couch of his own construction. By his bedhead hung his sword, his
most valued and most valuable possession. It was one which had
escaped the dispersion of the ancients; it had been ancient even in
their days, and of far better work than they themselves
produced.</p>
<p>Broad, long, straight, and well-balanced, it appeared capable of
cutting through helmet and mail, when wielded by Oliver's sturdy
arm. Such a sword could not have been purchased for money; money,
indeed, had often been offered for it in vain; persuasion, and even
covert threats from those higher in authority who coveted it, were
alike wasted. The sword had been in the family for generations, and
when the Baron grew too old, or rather when he turned away from
active life, the second son claimed it as the fittest to use it.
The claim was tacitly allowed; at all events, he had it, and meant
to keep it.</p>
<p>In a corner stood his lance, long and sharp, for use on
horse-back, and by it his saddle and accoutrements. The helmet and
the shirt of mail, the iron greaves and spurs, the short iron mace
to bang at the saddle-bow, spoke of the knight, the man of horses
and war.</p>
<p>Oliver's whole delight was in exercise and sport. The boldest
rider, the best swimmer, the best at leaping, at hurling the dart
or the heavy hammer, ever ready for tilt or tournament, his whole
life was spent with horse, sword, and lance. A year younger than
Felix, he was at least ten years physically older. He measured
several inches more round the chest; his massive shoulders and
immense arms, brown and hairy, his powerful limbs, tower-like neck,
and somewhat square jaw were the natural concomitants of enormous
physical strength.</p>
<p>All the blood and bone and thew and sinew of the house seemed to
have fallen to his share; all the fiery, restless spirit and
defiant temper; all the utter recklessness and warrior's instinct.
He stood every inch a man, with dark, curling, short-cut hair,
brown cheek and Roman chin, trimmed moustache, brown eye, shaded by
long eyelashes and well-marked brows; every inch a natural king of
men. That very physical preponderance and animal beauty was perhaps
his bane, for his comrades were so many, and his love adventures so
innumerable, that they left him no time for serious ambition.</p>
<p>Between the brothers there was the strangest mixture of
affection and repulsion. The elder smiled at the excitement and
energy of the younger; the younger openly despised the studious
habits and solitary life of the elder. In time of real trouble and
difficulty they would have been drawn together; as it was, there
was little communion; the one went his way, and the other his.
There was perhaps rather an inclination to detract from each
other's achievements that to praise them, a species of jealousy or
envy without personal dislike, if that can be understood. They were
good friends, and yet kept apart.</p>
<p>Oliver made friends of all, and thwacked and banged his enemies
into respectful silence. Felix made friends of none, and was
equally despised by nominal friends and actual enemies. Oliver was
open and jovial; Felix reserved and contemptuous, or sarcastic in
manner. His slender frame, too tall for his width, was against him;
he could neither lift the weights nor undergo the muscular strain
readily borne by Oliver. It was easy to see that Felix, although
nominally the eldest, had not yet reached his full development. A
light complexion, fair hair and eyes, were also against him; where
Oliver made conquests, Felix was unregarded. He laughed, but
perhaps his secret pride was hurt.</p>
<p>There was but one thing Felix could do in the way of exercise
and sport. He could shoot with the bow in a manner till then
entirely unapproached. His arrows fell unerringly in the centre of
the target, the swift deer and the hare were struck down with ease,
and even the wood-pigeon in full flight. Nothing was safe from
those terrible arrows. For this, and this only, his fame had gone
forth; and even this was made a source of bitterness to him.</p>
<p>The nobles thought no arms worthy of men of descent but the
sword and lance; missile weapons, as the dart and arrow, were the
arms of retainers. His degradation was completed when, at a
tournament, where he had mingled with the crowd, the Prince sent
for him to shoot at the butt, and display his skill among the
soldiery, instead of with the knights in the tilting ring. Felix
shot, indeed, but shut his eyes that the arrow might go wide, and
was jeered at as a failure even in that ignoble competition. Only
by an iron self-control did he refrain that day from planting one
of the despised shafts in the Prince's eye.</p>
<p>But when Oliver joked him about his failure, Felix asked him to
hang up his breastplate at two hundred yards. He did so, and in an
instant a shaft was sent through it. After that Oliver held his
peace, and in his heart began to think that the bow was a dangerous
weapon.</p>
<p>"So you are late again this morning," said Oliver, leaning
against the recess of the window, and placing his arms on it. The
sunshine fell on his curly dark hair, still wet from the river.
"Studying last night, I suppose?" turning over the parchment. "Why
didn't you ride into town with me?"</p>
<p>"The water must have been cold this morning?" said Felix,
ignoring the question.</p>
<p>"Yes; there was a slight frost, or something like it, very
early, and a mist on the surface; but it was splendid in the pool.
Why don't you get up and come? You used to."</p>
<p>"I can swim," said Felix laconically, implying that, having
learnt the art, it no more tempted him. "You were late last night.
I heard you put Night in."</p>
<p>"We came home in style; it was rather dusky, but Night galloped
the Green Miles."</p>
<p>"Mind she doesn't put her hoof in a rabbit's hole, some
night."</p>
<p>"Not that. She can see like a cat. I believe we got over the
twelve miles in less than an hour. Sharp work, considering the
hills. You don't inquire for the news."</p>
<p>"What's the news to me?"</p>
<p>"Well, there was a quarrel at the palace yesterday afternoon.
The Prince told Louis he was a double-faced traitor, and Louis told
the Prince he was a suspicious fool. It nearly came to blows, and
Louis is banished."</p>
<p>"For the fiftieth time."</p>
<p>"This time it is more serious."</p>
<p>"Don't believe it. He will be sent for again this morning;
cannot you see why?"</p>
<p>"No."</p>
<p>"If the Prince is really suspicious, he will never send his
brother into the country, where he might be resorted to by
discontented people. He will keep him close at hand."</p>
<p>"I wish the quarrelling would cease; it spoils half the fun;
one's obliged to creep about the court and speak in whispers, and
you can't tell whom you are talking to; they may turn on you if you
say too much. There is no dancing either. I hate this moody state.
I wish they would either dance or fight."</p>
<p>"Fight! who?"</p>
<p>"Anybody. There's some more news, but you don't care."</p>
<p>"No. I do not."</p>
<p>"Why don't you go and live in the woods all by yourself?" said
Oliver, in some heat.</p>
<p>Felix laughed.</p>
<p>"Tell me your news. I am listening."</p>
<p>"The Irish landed at Blacklands the day before yesterday, and
burnt Robert's place; they tried Letburn, but the people there had
been warned, and were ready. And there's an envoy from Sypolis
arrived; some think the Assembly has broken up; they were all at
daggers drawn. So much for the Holy League."</p>
<p>"So much for the Holy League," repeated Felix.</p>
<p>"What are you going to do to-day?" asked Oliver, after
awhile.</p>
<p>"I am going down to my canoe," said Felix.</p>
<p>"I will go with you; the trout are rising. Have you got any
hooks?"</p>
<p>"There's some in the box there, I think; take the tools
out."</p>
<p>Oliver searched among the tools in the open box, all rusty and
covered with dust, while Felix finished dressing, put away his
parchment, and knotted the thong round his chest. He found some
hooks at the bottom, and after breakfast they walked out together,
Oliver carrying his rod, and a boar-spear, and Felix a boar-spear
also, in addition to a small flag basket with some chisels and
gouges.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-3" id="Chap2-3"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER III<br/> THE STOCKADE</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>When Oliver and Felix started, they left Philip, the third and
youngest of the three brothers, still at breakfast. They turned to
the left, on getting out of doors, and again to the left, through
the covered passage between the steward's store and the kitchen.
Then crossing the waggon yard, they paused a moment to glance in at
the forge, where two men were repairing part of a plough.</p>
<p>Oliver must also look for a moment at his mare, after which they
directed their steps to the South Gate. The massive oaken door was
open, the bolts having been drawn back at hornblow. There was a
guard-room on one side of the gate under the platform in the
corner, where there was always supposed to be a watch.</p>
<p>But in times of peace, and when there were no apprehensions of
attack, the men whose turn it was to watch there were often called
away for a time to assist in some labour going forward, and at that
moment were helping to move the woolpacks farther into the
warehouse. Still they were close at hand, and had the day watchman
or warder, who was now on the roof, blown his horn, would have
rushed direct to the gate. Felix did not like this relaxation of
discipline. His precise ideas were upset at the absence of the
guard; method, organization, and precision, were the
characteristics of his mind, and this kind of uncertainty irritated
him.</p>
<p>"I wish Sir Constans would insist on the guard being kept," he
remarked. Children, in speaking of their parents, invariably gave
them their titles. Now their father's title was properly "my lord,"
as he was a baron, and one of the most ancient. But he had so long
abnegated the exercise of his rights and privileges, sinking the
noble in the mechanician, that men had forgotten the proper style
in which they should address him. "Sir" was applied to all nobles,
whether they possessed estates or not. The brothers were invariably
addressed as Sir Felix or Sir Oliver. It marked, therefore, the low
estimation in which the Baron was held when even his own sons spoke
of him by that title.</p>
<p>Oliver, though a military man by profession, laughed at Felix's
strict view of the guards' duties. Familiarity with danger, and
natural carelessness, had rendered him contemptuous of it.</p>
<p>"There's no risk," said he, "that I can see. Who could attack
us? The Bushmen would never dream of it; the Romany would be seen
coming days beforehand; we are too far from the Lake for the
pirates; and as we are not great people, as we might have been, we
need dread no private enmity. Besides which, any assailants must
pass the stockades first."</p>
<p>"Quite true. Still I don't like it; it is a loose way of doing
things."</p>
<p>Outside the gate they followed the waggon track, or South Road,
for about half a mile. It crossed meadows parted by low hedges, and
they remarked, as they went, on the shortness of the grass, which,
for want of rain, was not nearly fit for mowing. Last year there
had been a bad wheat crop; this year there was at present scarcely
any grass. These matters were of the highest importance; peace or
war, famine or plenty, might depend upon the weather of the next
few months.</p>
<p>The meadows, besides being divided by the hedges, kept purposely
cropped low, were surrounded, like all the cultivated lands, by
high and strong stockades. Half a mile down the South Road they
left the track, and following a footpath some few hundred yards,
came to the pool where Oliver had bathed that morning. The river,
which ran through the enclosed grounds, was very shallow, for they
were near its source in the hills, but just there it widened, and
filled a depression fifty or sixty yards across, which was deep
enough for swimming. Beyond the pool the stream curved and left the
enclosure; the stockade, or at least an open work of poles, was
continued across it. This work permitted the stream to flow freely,
but was sufficiently close to exclude any one who might attempt to
enter by creeping up the bed of the river.</p>
<p>They crossed the river just above the pool by some
stepping-stones, large blocks rolled in for the purpose, and
approached the stockade. It was formed of small but entire trees,
young elms, firs, or very thick ash-poles, driven in a double row
into the earth, the first or inner row side by side, the outer row
filling the interstices, and the whole bound together at the bottom
by split willow woven in and out. This interweaving extended only
about three feet up, and was intended first to bind the structure
together, and secondly to exclude small animals which might creep
in between the stakes. The reason it was not carried all up was
that it should not afford a footing to human thieves desirous of
climbing over.</p>
<p>The smooth poles by themselves afforded no notch or foothold for
a Bushman's naked foot. They rose nine or ten feet above the
willow, so that the total height of the palisade was about twelve
feet, and the tops of the stakes were sharpened. The construction
of such palisades required great labour, and could be carried out
only by those who could command the services of numbers of men, so
that a small proprietor was impossible, unless within the walls of
a town. This particular stockade was by no means an extensive one,
in comparison with the estates of more prominent nobles.</p>
<p>The enclosure immediately surrounding the Old House was of an
irregular oval shape, perhaps a mile long, and not quite
three-quarters of a mile wide, the house being situated towards the
northern and higher end of the oval. The river crossed it, entering
on the west and leaving on the eastern side. The enclosure was for
the greater part meadow and pasture, for here the cattle were kept,
which supplied the house with milk, cheese, and butter, while
others intended for slaughter were driven in here for the last
months of fattening.</p>
<p>The horses in actual use for riding, or for the waggons, were
also turned out here temporarily. There were two pens and rickyards
within it, one beside the river, one farther down. The South Road
ran almost down the centre, passing both rickyards, and leaving the
stockade at the southern end by a gate, called the barrier. At the
northern extremity of the oval the palisade passed within three
hundred yards of the house, and there was another barrier, to which
the road led from the Maple Gate, which has been mentioned. From
thence it went across the hills to the town of Ponze. Thus, anyone
approaching the Old House had first to pass the barrier and get
inside the palisade.</p>
<p>At each barrier there was a cottage and a guard-room, though, as
a matter of fact, the watch was kept in peaceful times even more
carelessly than at the inner gates of the wall about the House
itself. Much the same plan, with local variations, was pursued on
the other estates of the province, though the stockade at the Old
House was remarkable for the care and skill with which it had been
constructed. Part of the duty of the watchman on the roof was to
keep an eye on the barriers, which he could see from his elevated
position.</p>
<p>In case of an incursion of gipsies, or any danger, the guard at
the barrier was supposed to at once close the gate, blow a horn,
and exhibit a flag. Upon hearing the horn or observing the flag,
the warder on the roof raised the alarm, and assistance was sent.
Such was the system, but as no attack had taken place for some
years the discipline had grown lax.</p>
<p>After crossing on the stepping-stones Oliver and Felix were soon
under the stockade which ran high above them, and was apparently as
difficult to get out of as to get into. By the strict law of the
estate, any person who left the stockade except by the public
barrier rendered himself liable to the lash or imprisonment. Any
person, even a retainer, endeavouring to enter from without by
pole, ladder, or rope, might be killed with an arrow or dart,
putting himself into the position of an outlaw. In practice, of
course, this law was frequently evaded. It did not apply to the
family of the owner.</p>
<p>Under some bushes by the palisade was a ladder of rope, the
rungs, however, of wood. Putting his fishing-tackle and boar spear
down, Oliver took the ladder and threw the end over the stockade.
He then picked up a pole with a fork at the end from the bushes,
left there, of course, for the purpose, and with the fork pushed
the rungs over till the ladder was adjusted, half within and half
without the palisade. It hung by the wooden rungs which caught the
tops of the stakes. He then went up, and when at the top, leant
over and drew up the outer part of the ladder one rung, which he
put the inner side of the palisade, so that on transferring his
weight to the outer side it might uphold him. Otherwise the ladder,
when he got over the points of the stakes, must have slipped the
distance between one rung and a second.</p>
<p>Having adjusted this, he got over, and Felix carrying up the
spears and tackle handed them to him. Felix followed, and thus in
three minutes they were on the outer side of the stockade.
Originally the ground for twenty yards, all round outside the
stockade, had been cleared of trees and bushes that they might not
harbour vermin, or thorn-hogs, or facilitate the approach of human
enemies. Part of the weekly work of the bailiffs was to walk round
the entire circumference of the stockade to see that it was in
order, and to have any bushes removed that began to grow up. As
with other matters, however, in the lapse of time the bailiffs
became remiss, and under the easy, and perhaps too merciful rule of
Sir Constans, were not recalled to their duties with sufficient
sharpness.</p>
<p>Brambles and thorns and other underwood had begun to cover the
space that should have been open, and young sapling oaks had risen
from dropped acorns. Felix pointed this out to Oliver, who seldom
accompanied him; he was indeed rather glad of the opportunity to do
so, as Oliver had more interest with Sir Constans than himself.
Oliver admitted it showed great negligence, but added that after
all it really did not matter. "What I wish," said he, "is that Sir
Constans would go to Court, and take his proper position."</p>
<p>Upon this they were well agreed; it was, in fact, almost the
only point upon which all three brothers did agree. They sometimes
talked about it till they separated in a furious temper, not with
each other but with him. There was a distinct track of footsteps
through the narrow band of low brambles and underwood between the
stockade and the forest. This had been made by Felix in his daily
visits to his canoe.</p>
<p>The forest there consisted principally of hawthorn-trees and
thorn thickets, with some scattered oaks and ashes; the timber was
sparse, but the fern was now fast rising up so thick, that in the
height of summer it would be difficult to walk through it. The tips
of the fronds unrolling were now not up to the knee; then the brake
would reach to the shoulder. The path wound round the thickets (the
blackthorn being quite impenetrable except with the axe) and came
again to the river some four or five hundred yards from the
stockade. The stream, which ran from west to east through the
enclosure, here turned and went due south.</p>
<p>On the bank Felix had found a fine black poplar, the largest and
straightest and best grown of that sort for some distance round,
and this he had selected for his canoe. Stones broke the current
here into eddies, below which there were deep holes and gullies
where alders hung over, and an ever-rustling aspen spread the
shadow of its boughs across the water. The light-coloured mud,
formed of disintegrated chalk, on the farther and shallower side
was only partly hidden by flags and sedges, which like a richer and
more alluvial earth. Nor did the bushes grow very densely on this
soil over the chalk, so that there was more room for casting the
fly than is usually the case where a stream runs through a forest.
Oliver, after getting his tackle in order, at once began to cast,
while Felix, hanging his doublet on an oft-used branch, and leaning
his spear against a tree, took his chisels and gouge from the flag
basket.</p>
<p>He had chosen the black poplar for the canoe because it was the
lightest wood, and would float best. To fell so large a tree had
been a great labour, for the axes were of poor quality, cut badly,
and often required sharpening. He could easily have ordered
half-a-dozen men to throw the tree, and they would have obeyed
immediately; but then the individuality and interest of the work
would have been lost. Unless he did it himself its importance and
value to him would have been diminished. It had now been down some
weeks, had been hewn into outward shape, and the larger part of the
interior slowly dug away with chisel and gouge.</p>
<p>He had commenced while the hawthorn was just putting forth its
first spray, when the thickets and the trees were yet bare. Now the
May bloom scented the air, the forest was green, and his work
approached completion. There remained, indeed, but some final
shaping and rounding off, and the construction, or rather cutting
out, of a secret locker in the stern. This locker was nothing more
than a square aperture chiselled out like a mortice, entering not
from above but parallel with the bottom, and was to be closed with
a tight-fitting piece of wood driven in by force of mallet.</p>
<p>A little paint would then conceal the slight chinks, and the
boat might be examined in every possible way without any trace of
this hiding-place being observed. The canoe was some eleven feet
long, and nearly three feet in the beam; it tapered at either end,
so that it might be propelled backwards or forwards without
turning, and stem and stern (interchangeable definitions in this
case) each rose a few inches higher than the general gunwale. The
sides were about two inches thick, the bottom three, so that
although dug out from light wood the canoe was rather heavy.</p>
<p>At first Felix constructed a light shed of fir poles roofed with
spruce-fir branches over the log, so that he might work sheltered
from the bitter winds of the early spring. As the warmth increased
he had taken the shed down, and now as the sun rose higher was glad
of the shade of an adjacent beech.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-4" id="Chap2-4"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER IV<br/> THE CANOE</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix had scarcely worked half an hour before Oliver returned
and threw himself on the ground at full length. He had wearied of
fishing, the delicate adjustment of the tackle and the care
necessary to keep the hook and line from catching in the branches
had quickly proved too much for his patience. He lay on the grass,
his feet towards the stream which ran and bubbled beneath, and
watched Felix chipping out the block intended to fit into the
secret opening or locker.</p>
<p>"Is it nearly finished, then?" he said presently. "What a time
you have been at it!"</p>
<p>"Nearly three months."</p>
<p>"Why did you make it so big? It is too big."</p>
<p>"Is it really? Perhaps I want to put some things in it."</p>
<p>"Oh, I see; cargo. But where are you going to launch it?"</p>
<p>"Below the stones there."</p>
<p>"Well, you won't be able to go far; there's an old fir across
the river down yonder, and a hollow willow has fallen in. Besides,
the stream's too shallow; you'll take ground before you get half a
mile."</p>
<p>"Shall I?"</p>
<p>"Of course you will. That boat will float six inches deep by
herself, and I'm sure there's not six inches by the Thorns."</p>
<p>"Very awkward."</p>
<p>"Why didn't you have a hide boat made, with a willow framework
and leather cover? Then you might perhaps get down the river by
hauling it past the shallows and the fallen trees. In two days'
time you would be in the hands of the gipsies."</p>
<p>"And you would be Sir Constans' heir!"</p>
<p>"Now, come, I say; that's too bad. You know I didn't mean that.
Besides, I think I'm as much his heir as you now" (looking at his
sinewy arm); "at least, he doesn't listen as much to you. I mean,
the river runs into the gipsies' country as straight as it can
go."</p>
<p>"Just so."</p>
<p>"Well, you seem very cool about it!"</p>
<p>"I am not going down the river."</p>
<p>"Then, where <i>are</i> you going?"</p>
<p>"On the Lake."</p>
<p>"Whew!" (whistling) "Pooh! Why, the Lake's—let me see, to
Heron Bay it's quite fifteen miles. You can't paddle across the
land."</p>
<p>"But I can put the canoe on a cart."</p>
<p>"Aha! why didn't you tell me before?"</p>
<p>"Because I did not wish anyone to know. Don't say anything."</p>
<p>"Not I. But what on earth, or rather, on water, are you driving
at? Where are you going? What's the canoe for?"</p>
<p>"I am going a voyage. But I will tell you all when it is ready.
Meantime, I rely on you to keep silence. The rest think the boat is
for the river."</p>
<p>"I will not say a word. But why did you not have a hide
boat?"</p>
<p>"They are not strong enough. They can't stand knocking
about."</p>
<p>"If you want to go a voyage (where to, I can't imagine), why not
take a passage on board a ship?"</p>
<p>"I want to go my own way. They will only go theirs. Nor do I
like the company."</p>
<p>"Well, certainly the sailors are the roughest lot I know. Still,
that would not have hurt you. You are rather dainty, Sir
Felix!"</p>
<p>"My daintiness does not hurt you."</p>
<p>"Can't I speak?" (sharply)</p>
<p>"Please yourself."</p>
<p>A silence. A cuckoo sang in the forest, and was answered from a
tree within the distant palisade. Felix chopped away slowly and
deliberately; he was not a good workman. Oliver watched his
progress with contempt; he could have put it into shape in half the
time. Felix could draw, and design; he could invent, but he was not
a practical workman, to give speedy and accurate effect to his
ideas.</p>
<p>"My opinion is," said Oliver, "that that canoe will not float
upright. It's one-sided."</p>
<p>Felix, usually so self-controlled, could not refrain from
casting his chisel down angrily. But he picked it up again, and
said nothing. This silence had more influence upon Oliver, whose
nature was very generous, than the bitterest retort. He sat up on
the sward.</p>
<p>"I will help launch it," he said. "We could manage it between
us, if you don't want a lot of the fellows down here."</p>
<p>"Thank you. I should like that best."</p>
<p>"And I will help you with the cart when you start."</p>
<p>Oliver rolled over on his back, and looked up idly at the white
flecks of cloud sailing at a great height.</p>
<p>"Old Mouse is a wretch not to give me a command," he said
presently.</p>
<p>Felix looked round involuntarily, lest any one should have
heard; Mouse was the nick-name for the Prince. Like all who rule
with irresponsible power, the Prince had spies everywhere. He was
not a cruel man, nor a benevolent, neither clever nor foolish,
neither strong nor weak; simply an ordinary, a very ordinary being,
who chanced to sit upon a throne because his ancestors did, and not
from any personal superiority.</p>
<p>He was at times much influenced by those around him; at others
he took his own course, right or wrong; at another he let matters
drift. There was never any telling in the morning what he might do
towards night, for there was no vein of will or bias running
through his character. In fact, he lacked character; he was all
uncertainty, except in jealousy of his supremacy. Possibly some
faint perception of his own incapacity, of the feeble grasp he had
upon the State, that seemed outwardly so completely his,
occasionally crossed his mind.</p>
<p>Hence the furious scenes with his brother; hence the sudden
imprisonments and equally sudden pardons; the spies and
eavesdroppers, the sequestration of estates for no apparent cause.
And, following these erratic severities to the suspected nobles,
proclamations giving privileges to the people, and removing taxes.
But in a few days these were imposed again, and men who dared to
murmur were beaten by the soldiers, or cast into the dungeons. Yet
Prince Louis (the family were all of the same name) was not an
ill-meaning man; he often meant well, but had no stability or
firmness of purpose.</p>
<p>This was why Felix dreaded lest some chance listener should hear
Oliver abuse him. Oliver had been in the army for some time; his
excellence in all arms, and especially with lance and sword, his
acknowledged courage, and his noble birth, entitled him to a
command, however lowly it might be. But he was still in the ranks,
and not the slightest recognition had ever been taken of his feats,
except, indeed, if whispers were true, by some sweet smiles from a
certain lady of the palace, who admired knightly prowess.</p>
<p>Oliver chafed under this neglect.</p>
<p>"I would not say that kind of thing," remarked Felix. "Certainly
it is annoying."</p>
<p>"Annoying! that is a mild expression. Of course, everyone knows
the reason. If we had any money, or influence, it would be very
different. But Sir Constans has neither gold nor power, and he
might have had both."</p>
<p>"There was a clerk from the notary's at the house yesterday
evening," said Felix.</p>
<p>"About the debts, no doubt. Some day the cunning old scoundrel,
when he can squeeze no more interest out of us, will find a legal
quibble and take the lot."</p>
<p>"Or put us in the Blue Chamber, the first time the Prince goes
to war and wants money. The Blue Chamber will say, 'Where can we
get it? Who's weakest?' 'Why, Sir Constans!' 'Then away with
him.'"</p>
<p>"Yes, that will be it. Yet I wish a war would happen; there
would be some chance for me. I would go with you in your canoe, but
you are going you don't know where. What's your object? Nothing.
You don't know yourself."</p>
<p>"Indeed!"</p>
<p>"No, you don't; you're a dreamer."</p>
<p>"I am afraid it is true."</p>
<p>"I hate dreams." After a pause, in a lower voice, "Have you any
money?"</p>
<p>Felix took out his purse and showed him the copper pieces.</p>
<p>"The eldest son of Constans Aquila with ten copper pieces,"
growled Oliver, rising, but taking them all the same. "Lend them to
me. I'll try them on the board to-night. Fancy me putting down
<i>copper!</i> It's intolerable" (working himself into a rage).
"I'll turn bandit, and rob on the roads. I'll go to King Yeo and
fight the Welsh. Confusion!"</p>
<p>He rushed into the forest, leaving his spear on the sward.</p>
<p>Felix quietly chipped away at the block he was shaping, but his
temper, too, was inwardly rising. The same talk, varied in detail,
but the same in point, took place every time the brothers were
together, and always with the same result of anger. In earlier days
Sir Constans had been as forward in all warlike exercises as Oliver
was now, and being possessed of extraordinary physical strength,
took a leading part among men. Wielding his battle-axe with
irresistible force, he distinguished himself in several battles and
sieges.</p>
<p>He had a singular talent for mechanical construction (the wheel
by which water was drawn from the well at the palace was designed
by him), but this very ingenuity was the beginning of his
difficulties. During a long siege, he invented a machine for
casting large stones against the walls, or rather put it together
from the fragmentary descriptions he had seen in authors, whose
works had almost perished before the dispersion of the ancients;
for he, too, had been studious in youth.</p>
<p>The old Prince was highly pleased with this engine, which
promised him speedy conquest over his enemies, and the destruction
of their strongholds. But the nobles who had the hereditary command
of the siege artillery, which consisted mainly of battering-rams,
could not endure to see their prestige vanishing. They caballed,
traduced the Baron, and he fell into disgrace. This disgrace, as he
was assured by secret messages from the Prince, was but policy; he
would be recalled so soon as the Prince felt himself able to
withstand the pressure of the nobles. But it happened that the old
Prince died at that juncture, and the present Prince succeeded.</p>
<p>The enemies of the Baron, having access to him, obtained his
confidence; the Baron was arrested and amerced in a heavy fine, the
payment of which laid the foundation of those debts which had since
been constantly increasing. He was then released, but was not for
some two years permitted to approach the Court. Meantime, men of
not half his descent, but with an unblushing brow and unctuous
tongue, had become the favourites at the palace of the Prince, who,
as said before, was not bad, but the mere puppet of
circumstances.</p>
<p>Into competition with these vulgar flatterers Aquila could not
enter. It was indeed pride, and nothing but pride, that had kept
him from the palace. By slow degrees he had sunk out of sight,
occupying himself more and more with mechanical inventions, and
with gardening, till at last he had come to be regarded as no more
than an agriculturist. Yet in this obscure condition he had not
escaped danger.</p>
<p>The common people were notoriously attached to him. Whether this
was due to his natural kindliness, his real strength of intellect,
and charm of manner, or whether it was on account of the
uprightness with which he judged between them, or whether it was
owing to all these things combined, certain it is that there was
not a man on the estate that would not have died for him. Certain
it is, too, that he was beloved by the people of the entire
district, and more especially by the shepherds of the hills, who
were freer and less under the control of the patrician caste.
Instead of carrying disputes to the town, to be adjudged by the
Prince's authority, many were privately brought to him.</p>
<p>This, by degrees becoming known, excited the jealousy and anger
of the Prince, an anger cunningly inflamed by the notary Francis,
and by other nobles. But they hesitated to execute anything against
him lest the people should rise, and it was doubtful, indeed, if
the very retainers of the nobles would attack the Old House, if
ordered. Thus the Baron's weakness was his defence. The Prince, to
do him justice, soon forgot the matter, and laughed at his own
folly, that he should be jealous of a man who was no more than an
agriculturist.</p>
<p>The rest were not so appeased; they desired the Baron's
destruction if only from hatred of his popularity, and they lost no
opportunity of casting discredit upon him, or of endeavouring to
alienate the affections of the people by representing him as a
magician, a thing clearly proved by his machines and engines, which
must have been designed by some supernatural assistance. But the
chief, as the most immediate and pressing danger, was the debt to
Francis the notary, which might at any moment be brought before the
Court.</p>
<p>Thus it was that the three sons found themselves without money
or position, with nothing but a bare patent of nobility. The third
and youngest alone had made any progress, if such it could be
called. By dint of his own persistent efforts, and by enduring
insults and rebuffs with indifference, he had at last obtained an
appointment in that section of the Treasury which received the dues
upon merchandise, and regulated the imposts. He was but a messenger
at every man's call; his pay was not sufficient to obtain his food,
still it was an advance, and he was in a government office. He
could but just exist in the town, sleeping in a garret, where he
stored the provisions he took in with him every Monday morning from
the Old House. He came home on the Saturday and returned to his
work on the Monday. Even his patience was almost worn out.</p>
<p>The whole place was thus falling to decay, while at the same
time it seemed to be flowing with milk and honey, for under the
Baron's personal attention the estate, though so carelessly
guarded, had become a very garden. The cattle had increased, and
were of the best kind, the horses were celebrated and sought for,
the sheep valued, the crops the wonder of the province. Yet there
was no money; the product went to the notary. This extraordinary
fertility was the cause of the covetous longing of the Court
favourites to divide the spoil.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-5" id="Chap2-5"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER V<br/> BARON AQUILA</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix's own position was bitter in the extreme. He felt he had
talent. He loved deeply, he knew that he was in turn as deeply
beloved; but he was utterly powerless. On the confines of the
estate, indeed, the men would run gladly to do his bidding. Beyond,
and on his own account, he was helpless. Manual labour (to plough,
to sow, to work on shipboard) could produce nothing in a time when
almost all work was done by bondsmen or family retainers. The life
of a hunter in the woods was free, but produced nothing.</p>
<p>The furs he sold simply maintained him; it was barter for
existence, not profit. The shepherds on the hills roamed in
comparative freedom, but they had no wealth except of sheep. He
could not start as a merchant without money; he could not enclose
an estate and build a house or castle fit for the nuptials of a
noble's daughter without money, or that personal influence which
answers the same purpose; he could not even hope to succeed to the
hereditary estate, so deeply was it encumbered; they might, indeed,
at any time be turned forth.</p>
<p>Slowly the iron entered into his soul. This hopelessness,
helplessness, embittered every moment. His love increasing with the
passage of time rendered his position hateful in the extreme. The
feeling within that he had talent which only required opportunity
stung him like a scorpion. The days went by, and everything
remained the same. Continual brooding and bitterness of spirit went
near to drive him mad.</p>
<p>At last the resolution was taken, he would go forth into the
world. That involved separation from Aurora, long separation, and
without communication, since letters could be sent only by special
messenger, and how should he pay a messenger? It was this terrible
thought of separation which had so long kept him inactive. In the
end the bitterness of hopelessness forced him to face it. He began
the canoe, but kept his purpose secret, especially from her, lest
tears should melt his resolution.</p>
<p>There were but two ways of travelling open to him: on foot, as
the hunters did, or by the merchant vessels. The latter, of course,
required payment, and their ways were notoriously coarse. If on
foot he could not cross the Lake, nor visit the countries on either
shore, nor the islands; therefore he cut down the poplar and
commenced the canoe. Whither he should go, and what he should do,
was entirely at the mercy of circumstances. He had no plan, no
route.</p>
<p>He had a dim idea of offering his services to some distant king
or prince, of unfolding to him the inventions he had made. He tried
to conceal from himself that he would probably be repulsed and
laughed at. Without money, without a retinue, how could he expect
to be received or listened to? Still, he must go; he could not help
himself, go he must.</p>
<p>As he chopped and chipped through the long weeks of early
spring, while the easterly winds bent the trees above him, till the
buds unfolded and the leaves expanded—while his hands were
thus employed, the whole map, as it were, of the known countries
seemed to pass without volition before his mind. He saw the cities
along the shores of the great Lake; he saw their internal
condition, the weakness of the social fabric, the misery of the
bondsmen. The uncertain action of the League, the only thread which
bound the world together; the threatening aspect of the Cymry and
the Irish; the dread north, the vast northern forests, from which
at any time invading hosts might descend on the fertile
south—it all went before his eyes.</p>
<p>What was there behind the immense and untraversed belt of forest
which extended to the south, to the east, and west? Where did the
great Lake end? Were the stories of the gold and silver mines of
Devon and Cornwall true? And where were the iron mines, from which
the ancients drew their stores of metal?</p>
<p>Led by these thoughts he twice or thrice left his labour, and
walking some twenty miles through the forests, and over the hills,
reached the summit of White Horse. From thence, resting on the
sward, he watched the vessels making slow progress by oars, and
some drawn with ropes by gangs of men or horses on the shore,
through the narrow straits. North and South there nearly met. There
was but a furlong of water between them. If ever the North came
down there the armies would cross. <i>There</i> was the key of the
world. Excepting the few cottages where the owners of the horses
lived, there was neither castle nor town within twenty miles.</p>
<p>Forced on by these thoughts, he broke the long silence which had
existed between him and his father. He spoke of the value and
importance of this spot; could not the Baron send forth his
retainers and enclose a new estate there? There was nothing to
prevent him. The forest was free to all, provided that they
rendered due service to the Prince. Might not a house or castle
built there become the beginning of a city? The Baron listened, and
then said he must go and see that a new hatch was put in the brook
to irrigate the water-meadow. That was all.</p>
<p>Felix next wrote an anonymous letter to the Prince pointing out
the value of the place. The Prince should seize it, and add to his
power. He knew that the letter was delivered, but there was no
sign. It had indeed, been read and laughed at. Why make further
efforts when they already had what they desired? One only, the deep
and designing Valentine, gave it serious thought in secret. It
seemed to him that something might come of it, another day, when he
was himself in power—if that should happen. But he, too,
forgot it in a week. Some secret effort was made to discover the
writer, for the council were very jealous of political opinion, but
it soon ended. The idea, not being supported by money or influence,
fell into oblivion.</p>
<p>Felix worked on, chipping out the canoe. The days passed, and
the boat was nearly finished. In a day or two now it would be
launched, and soon afterwards he should commence his voyage. He
should see Aurora once more only. He should see her, but he should
not say farewell; she would not know that he was going till he had
actually departed. As he thought thus a dimness came before his
eyes; his hand trembled, and he could not work. He put down the
chisel, and paused to steady himself.</p>
<p>Upon the other side of the stream, somewhat lower down, a yellow
wood-dog had been lapping the water to quench its thirst, watching
the man the while. So long as Felix was intent upon his work, the
wild animal had no fear; the moment he looked up, the creature
sprang back into the underwood. A dove was cooing in the forest not
far distant, but as he was about to resume work the cooing ceased.
Then a wood-pigeon rose from the ashes with a loud clapping of
wings. Felix listened. His hunter instinct told him that something
was moving there. A rustling of the bushes followed, and he took
his spear which had been leant against the adjacent tree. But,
peering into the wood, in a moment he recognised Oliver, who,
having walked off his rage, was returning.</p>
<p>"I though it might have been a Bushman," said Felix, replacing
his spear; "only they are noiseless."</p>
<p>"Any of them might have cut me down," said Oliver; "for I forgot
my weapon. It is nearly noon; are you coming home to dinner?"</p>
<p>"Yes; I must bring my tools."</p>
<p>He put them in the basket, and together they returned to the
rope ladder. As they passed the Pen by the river they caught sight
of the Baron in the adjacent gardens, which were irrigated by his
contrivances from the stream, and went towards him. A retainer held
two horses, one gaily caparisoned, outside the garden; his master
was talking with Sir Constans.</p>
<p>"It is Lord John," said Oliver. They approached slowly under the
fruit-trees, not to intrude. Sir Constans was showing the courtier
an early cherry-tree, whose fruit was already set. The dry hot
weather had caused it to set even earlier than usual. A suit of
black velvet, an extremely expensive and almost unprocurable
material, brought the courtier's pale features into relief. It was
only by the very oldest families that any velvet or satin or
similar materials were still preserved; if these were in pecuniary
difficulties they might sell some part of their store, but such
things were not to be got for money in the ordinary way.</p>
<p>Two small silver bars across his left shoulder showed that he
was a lord-in-waiting. He was a handsome man, with clear-cut
features, somewhat rakish from late hours and dissipation, but not
the less interesting on that account. But his natural advantages
were so over-run with the affectation of the Court that you did not
see the man at all, being absorbed by the studied gesture to
display the jewelled ring, and the peculiarly low tone of voice in
which it was the fashion to speak.</p>
<p>Beside the old warrior he looked a mere stripling. The Baron's
arm was bare, his sleeve rolled up; and as he pointed to the tree
above, the muscles, as the limb moved, displayed themselves in
knots, at which the courtier himself could not refrain from
glancing. Those mighty arms, had they clasped him about the waist,
could have crushed his bending ribs. The heaviest blow that he
could have struck upon that broad chest would have produced no more
effect than a hollow sound; it would not even have shaken that
powerful frame.</p>
<p>He felt the steel blue eye, bright as the sky of midsummer,
glance into his very mind. The high forehead bare, for the Baron
had his hat in his hand, mocked at him in its humility. The Baron
bared his head in honour of the courtier's office and the Prince
who had sent him. The beard, though streaked with white, spoke
little of age; it rather indicated an abundant, a luxuriant
vitality.</p>
<p>Lord John was not at ease. He shifted from foot to foot, and
occasionally puffed a large cigar of Devon tobacco. His errand was
simple enough. Some of the ladies at the Court had a fancy for
fruit, especially strawberries, but there were none in the market,
nor to be obtained from the gardens about the town. It was
recollected that Sir Constans was famous for his gardens, and the
Prince despatched Lord John to Old House with a gracious message
and request for a basket of strawberries. Sir Constans was much
pleased; but he regretted that the hot, dry weather had not
permitted the fruit to come to any size or perfection. Still there
were some.</p>
<p>The courtier accompanied him to the gardens, and saw the
water-wheel which, turned by a horse, forced water from the stream
into a small pond or elevated reservoir, from which it irrigated
the ground. This supply of water had brought on the fruit, and Sir
Constans was able to gather a small basket. He then looked round to
see what other early product he could send to the palace. There was
no other fruit; the cherries, though set, were not ripe; but there
was some asparagus, which had not yet been served, said Lord John,
at the Prince's table.</p>
<p>Sir Constans set men to hastily collect all that was ready, and
while this was done took the courtier over the gardens. Lord John
felt no interest whatever in such matters, but he could not choose
but admire the extraordinary fertility of the enclosure, and the
variety of the products. There was everything; fruit of all kinds,
herbs of every species, plots specially devoted to those possessing
medicinal virtue. This was only one part of the gardens; the
orchards proper were farther down, and the flowers nearer the
house. Sir Constans had sent a man to the flower-garden, who now
returned with two fine bouquets, which were presented to Lord John:
the one for the Princess, the Prince's sister; the other for any
lady to whom he might choose to present it.</p>
<p>The fruit had already been handed to the retainer who had charge
of the horses. Though interested, in spite of himself, Lord John,
acknowledging the flowers, turned to go with a sense of relief.
This simplicity of manners seemed discordant to him. He felt out of
place, and in some way lowered in his own esteem, and yet he
despised the rural retirement and beauty about him.</p>
<p>Felix and Oliver, a few yards distant, were waiting with rising
tempers. The spectacle of the Baron in his native might of
physique, humbly standing, hat in hand, before this Court
messenger, discoursing on cherries, and offering flowers and fruit,
filled them with anger and disgust. The affected gesture and
subdued voice of the courtier, on the other hand, roused an equal
contempt.</p>
<p>As Lord John turned, he saw them. He did not quite guess their
relationship, but supposed they were cadets of the house, it being
customary for those in any way connected to serve the head of the
family. He noted the flag basket in Felix's hand, and naturally
imagined that he had been at work.</p>
<p>"You have been to-to plough, eh?" he said, intending to be very
gracious and condescending. "Very healthy employment. The land
requires some rain, does it not? Still I trust it will not rain
till I am home, for my plume's sake," tossing his head. "Allow me,"
and as he passed he offered Oliver a couple of cigars. "One each,"
he added; "the best Devon."</p>
<p>Oliver took the cigars mechanically, holding them as if they had
been vipers, at arm's length, till the courtier had left the
garden, and the hedge interposed. Then he threw them into the
water-carrier. The best tobacco, indeed the only real tobacco, came
from the warm Devon land, but little of it reached so far, on
account of the distance, the difficulties of intercourse, the rare
occasions on which the merchant succeeded in escaping the vexatious
interference, the downright robbery of the way. Intercourse was
often entirely closed by war.</p>
<p>These cigars, therefore, were worth their weight in silver, and
such tobacco could be obtained only by those about the Court, as a
matter of favour, too, rather than by purchase. Lord John would,
indeed, have stared aghast had he seen the rustic to whom he had
given so valuable a present cast them into a ditch. He rode towards
the Maple Gate, excusing his haste volubly to Sir Constans, who was
on foot, and walked beside him a little way, pressing him to take
some refreshment.</p>
<p>His sons overtook the Baron as he walked towards home, and
walked by his side in silence. Sir Constans was full of his
fruit.</p>
<p>"The wall cherry," said he, "will soon have a few ripe."</p>
<p>Oliver swore a deep but soundless oath in his chest. Sir
Constans continued talking about his fruit and flowers, entirely
oblivious of the silent anger of the pair beside him. As they
approached the house, the warder blew his horn thrice for noon. It
was also the signal for dinner.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-6" id="Chap2-6"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER VI<br/> THE FOREST TRACK</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>When the canoe was finished, Oliver came to help Felix launch
it, and they rolled it on logs down to the place where the stream
formed a pool. But when it was afloat, as Oliver had foretold, it
did not swim upright in the water. It had not been shaped
accurately, and one side was higher out of the water than the
other.</p>
<p>Felix was so disgusted at this failure that he would not listen
to anything Oliver could suggest. He walked back to the spot where
he had worked so many weeks, and sat down with his face turned from
the pool. It was not so much the actual circumstance which
depressed him, as the long train of untoward incidents which had
preceded it for years past. These seemed to have accumulated, till
now this comparatively little annoyance was like the last
straw.</p>
<p>Oliver followed him, and said that the defect could be remedied
by placing ballast on the more buoyant side of the canoe to bring
it down to the level of the other; or, perhaps, if some more wood
were cut away on the heavier side, that it would cause it to rise.
He offered to do the work himself, but Felix, in his gloomy mood,
would not answer him. Oliver returned to the pool, and getting into
the canoe, poled it up and down the stream. It answered perfectly,
and could be easily managed; the defect was more apparent than
real, for when a person sat in the canoe, his weight seemed to
bring it nearly level.</p>
<p>It was only when empty that it canted to one side. He came back
again to Felix, and pointed this out to him. The attempt was
useless; the boat might answer the purpose perfectly well, but it
was not the boat Felix had intended it to be. It did not come up to
his ideal.</p>
<p>Oliver was now somewhat annoyed at Felix's sullen silence, so he
drew the canoe partly on shore, to prevent it from floating away,
and then left him to himself.</p>
<p>Nothing more was said about it for a day or two. Felix did not
go near the spot where he had worked so hard and so long, but on
the Saturday Philip came home as usual, and, as there was now no
secret about the canoe, went down to look at it with Oliver. They
pushed it off, and floated two or three miles down the stream,
hauling it on the shore past the fallen fir tree, and then, with a
cord, towed it back again. The canoe, with the exception of the
trifling deficiency alluded to, was a good one, and thoroughly
serviceable.</p>
<p>They endeavoured again to restore Felix's opinion of it, and an
idea occurring to Philip, he said a capital plan would be to add an
outrigger, and so balance it perfectly. But though usually quick to
adopt ideas when they were good, in this case Felix was too much
out of conceit with himself. He would listen to nothing. Still, he
could not banish it from his mind, though now ashamed to return to
it after so obstinately refusing all suggestions. He wandered
aimlessly about in the woods, till one day he found himself in the
path that led to Heron Bay.</p>
<p>Strolling to the shore of the great Lake, he sat down and
watched a vessel sailing afar off slowly before the east wind. The
thought presently occurred to him, that the addition of an
outrigger in the manner Philip had mentioned would enable him to
carry a sail. The canoe could not otherwise support a sail (unless
a very small one merely for going before the breeze), but with such
a sail as the outrigger would bear, he could venture much farther
away from land, his voyage might be much more extended, and his
labour with the paddle lessened.</p>
<p>This filled him with fresh energy; he returned, and at once
recommenced work. Oliver, finding that he was again busy at it,
came and insisted upon assisting. With his help, the work
progressed rapidly. He used the tools so deftly as to accomplish
more in an hour than Felix could in a day. The outrigger consisted
of a beam of poplar, sharpened at both ends, and held at some six
or seven feet from the canoe by two strong cross-pieces.</p>
<p>A mast, about the same height as the canoe was long, was then
set up; it was made from a young fir-tree. Another smaller fir
supplied the yard, which extended fore and aft, nearly the length
of the boat. The sail, of coarse canvas, was not very high, but
long, and rather broader at each end where the rope attached it to
the prow and stern, or, rather, the two prows. Thus arranged, it
was not so well suited for running straight before the wind, as for
working into it, a feat never attempted by the ships of the
time.</p>
<p>Oliver was delighted with the appearance of the boat, so much so
that now and then he announced his intention of accompanying Felix
on his voyage. But after a visit to the town, and a glance at the
Princess Lucia, his resolution changed. Yet he wavered, one time
openly reproaching himself for enduring such a life of inaction and
ignominy, and at another deriding Felix and his visionary schemes.
The canoe was now completed; it was tried on the pool and found to
float exactly as it should. It had now to be conveyed to Heron
Bay.</p>
<p>The original intention was to put it on a cart, but the rude
carts used on the estate could not very well carry it, and a sledge
was substituted. Several times, during the journey through the
forest, the sledge had to be halted while the underwood was cut
away to permit of its passing; and once a slough had to be filled
up with branches hewn from fir trees, and bundles of fern. These
delays made it evening before the shore of the creek was
reached.</p>
<p>It was but a little inlet, scarce a bowshot wide at the entrance
and coming to a point inland. Here the canoe was left in charge of
three serfs, who were ordered to build a hut and stay beside it.
Some provisions were sent next day on the backs of other serfs, and
in the afternoon (it was Saturday) all three brothers arrived; the
canoe was launched, and they started for a trial sail. With a south
wind they ran to the eastward at a rapid pace, keeping close to the
shore till within a mile of White Horse.</p>
<p>There they brought to by steering the canoe dead against the
wind; then transferring the steering-paddle (a rather large one,
made for the purpose) to the other end, and readjusting the sail,
the outrigger being still to leeward, they ran back at an equal
speed. The canoe answered perfectly, and Felix was satisfied. He
now despatched his tools and various weapons to the hut to be put
on board. His own peculiar yew bow he kept to the last at home; it
and his chest bound with hide would go with him on the last
day.</p>
<p>Although, in his original purpose, Felix had designed to go
forth without anyone being aware of his intention, the
circumstances which had arisen, and the necessary employment of so
many men, had let out the secret to some degree. The removal of the
tools and weapons, the crossbow, darts, and spear, still more
attracted attention. But little or nothing was said about it,
though the Baron and Baroness could not help but observe these
preparations. The Baron deliberately shut his eyes and went about
his gardening; he was now, too, busy with the first mowing. In his
heart, perhaps, he felt that he had not done altogether right in so
entirely retiring from the world.</p>
<p>By doing so he had condemned his children to loneliness, and to
be regarded with contempt. Too late now, he could only obstinately
persist in his course. The Baroness, inured for so many, many years
to disappointment, had contracted her view of life till it scarcely
extended beyond mere physical comfort. Nor could she realize the
idea of Felix's approaching departure; when he was actually gone,
it would, perhaps, come home to her.</p>
<p>All was now ready, and Felix was only waiting for the Feast of
St. James to pay a last visit to Aurora at Thyma Castle. The
morning before the day of the Feast, Felix and Oliver set out
together. They had not lived altogether in harmony, but now, at
this approaching change, Oliver felt that he must bear Felix
company. Oliver rode his beautiful Night, he wore his plumed hat
and precious sword, and carried his horseman's lance. Felix rode a
smaller horse, useful, but far from handsome. He carried his yew
bow and hunting knife.</p>
<p>Thyma Castle was situated fifteen miles to the south; it was the
last outpost of civilization; beyond it there was nothing but
forest, and the wild open plains, the home of the gipsies. This
circumstance of position had given Baron Thyma, in times past, a
certain importance more than was due to the size of his estate or
the number of his retainers. During an invasion of the gipsies, his
castle bore the brunt of the war, and its gallant defence, indeed,
broke their onward progress. So many fell in endeavouring to take
it, that the rest were disheartened, and only scattered bands
penetrated beyond.</p>
<p>For this service the Baron received the grant of various
privileges; he was looked on as a pillar of the State, and was
welcome at the court. But it proved an injury to him in the end.
His honours, and the high society they led him into, were too great
for the comparative smallness of his income. Rich in flocks and
herds, he had but little coin. High-spirited, and rather fond of
display, he could not hold back; he launched forth, with the usual
result of impoverishment, mortgage, and debt.</p>
<p>He had hoped to obtain the command of an army in the wars that
broke out from time to time; it was, indeed, universally admitted
that he was in every respect qualified for such a post. The
courtiers and others, however, jealous, as is ever the case, of
ability and real talent, debarred him by their intrigues from
attaining his object. Pride prevented him from acquiescing in this
defeat; he strove by display and extravagance to keep himself well
to the front, flaunting himself before the eyes of all. This course
could not last long; he was obliged to retire to his estate, which
narrowly escaped forfeiture to his creditors.</p>
<p>So ignominious an end after such worthy service was, however,
prevented by the personal interference of the old Prince, who, from
his private resources, paid off the most pressing creditors. To the
last, the old Prince received him as a friend, and listened to his
counsel. Thyma was ever in hopes that some change in the balance of
parties would give him his opportunity. When the young Prince
succeeded, he was clever enough to see that the presence of such
men about his Court gave it a stability, and he, too, invited Thyma
to tender his advice. The Baron's hopes now rose higher than ever,
but again he was disappointed.</p>
<p>The new Prince, himself incapable, disliked and distrusted
talent. The years passed, and the Baron obtained no appointment.
Still he strained his resources to the utmost to visit the Court as
often as possible; still he believed that sooner or later a turn of
the wheel would elevate him.</p>
<p>There had existed between the houses of Thyma and Aquila the
bond of hearth-friendship; the gauntlets, hoofs, and rings were
preserved by both, and the usual presents passed thrice a year, at
midsummer, Christmas, and Lady-day. Not much personal intercourse
had taken place, however, for some years, until Felix was attracted
by the beauty of the Lady Aurora. Proud, showy, and pushing, Thyma
could not understand the feelings which led his hearth-friend to
retire from the arena and busy himself with cherries and
water-wheels. On the other hand, Constans rather looked with quiet
derision on the ostentation of the other. Thus there was a certain
distance, as it were, between them.</p>
<p>Baron Thyma could not, of course, be ignorant of the attachment
between his daughter and Felix; yet as much as possible he ignored
it. He never referred to Felix; if his name was incidentally
mentioned, he remained silent. The truth was, he looked higher for
Lady Aurora. He could not in courtesy discourage even in the
faintest manner the visits of his friend's son; the knightly laws
of honour would have forbidden so mean a course. Nor would his
conscience permit him to do so, remembering the old days when he
and the Baron were glad companions together, and how the Baron
Aquila was the first to lead troops to his assistance in the gipsy
war. Still, he tacitly disapproved; he did not encourage.</p>
<p>Felix felt that he was not altogether welcome; he recognised the
sense of restraint that prevailed when he was present. It deeply
hurt his pride, and nothing but his love for Aurora could have
enabled him to bear up against it. The galling part of it was that
he could not in his secret heart condemn the father for evidently
desiring a better alliance for his child. This was the strongest of
the motives that had determined him to seek the unknown.</p>
<p>If anything, the Baron would have preferred Oliver as a suitor
for his daughter; he sympathized with Oliver's fiery spirit, and
admired his feats of strength and dexterity with sword and spear.
He had always welcomed Oliver heartily, and paid him every
attention. This, to do Oliver justice, was one reason why he
determined to accompany his brother, thinking that if he was there
he could occupy attention, and thus enable Felix to have more
opportunity to speak with Aurora.</p>
<p>The two rode forth from the courtyard early in the morning, and
passing through the whole length of the enclosure within the
stockade, issued at the South Barrier and almost immediately
entered the forest. They rather checked their horses' haste, fresh
as the animals were from the stable, but could not quite control
their spirits, for the walk of a horse is even half as fast again
while he is full of vigour. The turn of the track soon shut out the
stockade; they were alone in the woods.</p>
<p>Long since, early as they were, the sun had dried the dew, for
his beams warm the atmosphere quickly as the spring advances
towards summer. But it was still fresh and sweet among the trees,
and even Felix, though bound on so gloomy an errand, could not
choose but feel the joyous influence of the morning. Oliver sang
aloud in his rich deep voice, and the thud, thud of the horses'
hoofs kept time to the ballad.</p>
<p>The thrushes flew but a little way back from the path as they
passed, and began to sing again directly they were by. The
whistling of blackbirds came from afar where there were open glades
or a running stream; the notes of the cuckoo became fainter and
fainter as they advanced farther from the stockade, for the cuckoo
likes the woodlands that immediately border on cultivation. For
some miles the track was broad, passing through thickets of thorn
and low hawthorn-trees with immense masses of tangled underwood
between, brambles and woodbine twisted and matted together,
impervious above but hollow beneath; under these they could hear
the bush-hens running to and fro and scratching at the dead leaves
which strewed the ground. Sounds of clucking deeper in betrayed the
situation of their nests.</p>
<p>Rushes, and the dead sedges of last year, up through which the
green fresh leaves were thrusting themselves, in some places stood
beside the way, fringing the thorns where the hollow ground often
held the water from rainstorms. Out from these bushes a rabbit
occasionally started and bounded across to the other side. Here,
where there were so few trees, and the forest chiefly consisted of
bush, they could see some distance on either hand, and also a wide
breadth of the sky. After a time the thorn bushes were succeeded by
ash wood, where the trees stood closer to the path, contracting the
view; it was moister here, the hoofs cut into the grass, which was
coarse and rank. The trees growing so close together destroyed
themselves, their lower branches rubbed together and were killed,
so that in many spots the riders could see a long way between the
trunks.</p>
<p>Every time the wind blew they could hear a distant cracking of
branches as the dead boughs, broken by the swaying of the trees,
fell off and came down. Had any one attempted to walk into the
forest there they would have sunk above the ankle in soft decaying
wood, hidden from sight by thick vegetation. Wood-pigeons rose
every minute from these ash-trees with a loud clatter of wings;
their calls resounded continually, now deep in the forest, and now
close at hand. It was evident that a large flock of them had their
nesting-place here, and indeed their nests of twigs could be
frequently seen from the path. There seemed no other birds.</p>
<p>Again the forest changed, and the track, passing on higher
ground, entered among firs. These, too, had killed each other by
growing so thickly; the lower branches of many were dead, and there
was nothing but a little green at the tops, while in many places
there was an open space where they had decayed away altogether.
Brambles covered the ground in these open places, brambles and
furze now bright with golden blossom. The jays screeched loudly,
startled as the riders passed under them, and fluttered away;
rabbits, which they saw again here, dived into their burrows.
Between the first the track was very narrow, and they could not
conveniently ride side by side; Oliver took the lead, and Felix
followed.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-7" id="Chap2-7"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER VII<br/> THE FOREST TRACK CONTINUED</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Once as they trotted by a pheasant rose screaming from the furze
and flew before them down the track. Just afterwards Felix, who had
been previously looking very carefully into the firs upon his right
hand, suddenly stopped, and Oliver, finding this, pulled up as
quickly as he could, thinking that Felix wished to tighten his
girth.</p>
<p>"What is it?" he asked, turning round in his saddle.</p>
<p>"Hush!" said Felix, dismounting; his horse, trained to hunting,
stood perfectly still, and would have remained within a few yards
of the spot by the hour together. Oliver reined back, seeing Felix
about to bend and string his bow.</p>
<p>"Bushmen," whispered Felix, as he, having fitted the loop to the
horn notch, drew forth an arrow from his girdle, where he carried
two or three more ready to hand than in the quiver on his shoulder.
"I thought I saw signs of them some time since, and now I am nearly
sure. Stay here a moment."</p>
<p>He stepped aside from the track in among the firs, which just
there were far apart, and went to a willow bush standing by some
furze. He had noticed that one small branch on the outer part of
the bush was snapped off, though green, and only hung by the bark.
The wood cattle, had they browsed upon it, would have nibbled the
tenderest leaves at the end of the bough; nor did they usually
touch willow, for the shoots are bitter and astringent. Nor would
the deer touch it in the spring, when they had so wide a choice of
food.</p>
<p>Nothing could have broken the branch in that manner unless it
was the hand of a man, or a blow with a heavy stick wielded by a
human hand. On coming to the bush he saw that the fracture was very
recent, for the bough was perfectly green; it had not turned brown,
and the bark was still soft with sap. It had not been cut with a
knife or any sharp instrument; it had been broken by rude violence,
and not divided. The next thing to catch his eye was the appearance
of a larger branch farther inside the bush.</p>
<p>This was not broken, but a part of the bark was abraded, and
even torn up from the wood as if by the impact of some hard
substance, as a stone thrown with great force. He examined the
ground, but there was no stone visible, and on again looking at the
bark he concluded that it had not been done with a stone at all,
because the abraded portion was not cut. The blow had been
delivered by something without edges or projections. He had now no
longer any doubt that the lesser branch outside had been broken,
and the large inside branch bruised, by the passage of a Bushman's
throw-club.</p>
<p>These, their only missile weapons, are usually made of
crab-tree, and consist of a very thin short handle, with a large,
heavy, and smooth knob. With these they can bring down small game,
as rabbits or hares, or a fawn (even breaking the legs of deer), or
the large birds, as the wood-turkeys. Stealing up noiselessly
within ten yards, the Bushman throws his club with great force, and
rarely misses his aim. If not killed at once, the game is certain
to be stunned, and is much more easily secured than if wounded with
an arrow, for with an arrow in its wing a large bird will flutter
along the ground, and perhaps creep into sedges or under
impenetrable bushes.</p>
<p>Deprived of motion by the blow of the club, it can, on the other
hand, be picked up without trouble and without the aid of a dog,
and if not dead is despatched by a twist of the Bushman's fingers
or a thrust from his spud. The spud is at once his dagger, his
knife and fork, his chisel, his grub-axe, and his gouge. It is a
piece of iron (rarely or never of steel, for he does not know how
to harden it) about ten inches long, an inch and a half wide at the
top or broadest end, where it is shaped and sharpened like a
chisel, only with the edge not straight but sloping, and from
thence tapering to a point at the other, the pointed part being
four-sided, like a nail.</p>
<p>It has, indeed, been supposed that the original spud was formed
from a large wrought-iron nail, such as the ancients used,
sharpened on a stone at one end, and beaten out flat at the other.
This instrument has a handle in the middle, half-way between the
chisel end and the point. The handle is of horn or bone (the spud
being put through the hollow of the bone), smoothed to fit the
hand. With the chisel end he cuts up his game and his food; the
edge, being sloping, is drawn across the meat and divides it. With
this end, too, he fashions his club and his traps, and digs up the
roots he uses. The other end he runs into his meat as a fork, or
thrusts it into the neck of his game to kill it and let out the
blood, or with it stabs a sleeping enemy.</p>
<p>The stab delivered by the Bushman can always be distinguished,
because the wound is invariably square, and thus a clue only too
certain has often been afforded to the assassin of many an
unfortunate hunter. Whatever the Bushman in this case had hurled
his club at, the club had gone into the willow bush, snapping the
light branch and leaving its mark upon the bark of the larger. A
moment's reflection convinced Felix that the Bushman had been in
chase of a pheasant. Only a few moments previously a pheasant had
flown before them down the track, and where there was one pheasant
there were generally several more in the immediate
neighbourhood.</p>
<p>The Bushmen were known to be peculiarly fond of the pheasant,
pursuing them all the year round without reference to the breeding
season, and so continuously, that it was believed they caused these
birds to be much less numerous, notwithstanding the vast extent of
the forests, than they would otherwise have been. From the fresh
appearance of the snapped bough, the Bushman must have passed but a
few hours previously, probably at the dawn, and was very likely
concealed at that moment near at hand in the forest, perhaps within
a hundred yards.</p>
<p>Felix looked carefully round, but could see nothing; there were
the trees, not one of them large enough to hide a man behind it,
the furze branches were small and scattered, and there was not
sufficient fern to conceal anything. The keenest glance could
discern nothing more. There were no footmarks on the ground,
indeed, the dry, dead leaves and fir needles could hardly have
received any impression, and up in the firs the branches were thin,
and the sky could be seen through them. Whether the Bushman was
lying in some slight depression of the ground, or whether he had
covered himself with dead leaves and fir needles, or whether he had
gone on and was miles away, there was nothing to show. But of the
fact that he had been there Felix was perfectly certain.</p>
<p>He returned towards Oliver, thoughtful and not without some
anxiety, for he did not like the idea (though there was really
little or no danger) of these human wild beasts being so near
Aurora, while he should so soon be far away. Thus occupied he did
not heed his steps, and suddenly felt something soft under his
feet, which struggled. Instantaneously he sprang as far as he
could, shuddering, for he had crushed an adder, and but just
escaped, by his involuntary and mechanical leap, from its
venom.</p>
<p>In the warm sunshine the viper, in its gravid state, had not
cared to move as usual on hearing his approach; he had stepped full
upon it. He hastened from the spot, and rejoined Oliver in a
somewhat shaken state of mind. Common as such an incident was in
the woods, where sandy soil warned the hunter to be careful, it
seemed ominous that particular morning, and, joined with the
discovery of Bushman traces, quite destroyed his sense of the
beauty of the day.</p>
<p>On hearing the condition of the willow boughs Oliver agreed as
to the cause, and said that they must remember to warn the Baron's
shepherds that the Bushmen, who had not been seen for some time,
were about. Soon afterwards they emerged from the sombre firs and
crossed a wide and sloping ground, almost bare of trees, where a
forest fire last year had swept away the underwood. A verdant
growth of grass was now springing up. Here they could canter side
by side. The sunshine poured down, and birds were singing joyously.
But they soon passed it, and checked their speed on entering the
trees again.</p>
<p>Tall beeches, with round smooth trunks, stood thick and close
upon the dry and rising ground; their boughs met overhead, forming
a green continuous arch for miles. The space between was filled
with brake fern, now fast growing up, and the track itself was
green with moss. As they came into this beautiful place a red stag,
startled from his browsing, bounded down the track, his swift leaps
carried him away like the wind; in another moment he left the path
and sprang among the fern, and was seen only in glimpses as he
passed between the beeches. Squirrels ran up the trunks as they
approached; they could see many on the ground in among the trees,
and passed under others on the branches high above them.
Woodpeckers flashed across the avenue.</p>
<p>Once Oliver pointed out the long, lean flank of a grey pig, or
fern-hog, as the animal rushed away among the brake. There were
several glades, from one of which they startled a few deer, whose
tails only were seen as they bounded into the underwood, but after
the glades came the beeches again. Beeches always form the most
beautiful forest, beeches and oak; and though nearing the end of
their journey, they regretted when they emerged from these trees
and saw the castle before them.</p>
<p>The ground suddenly sloped down into a valley, beyond which rose
the Downs; the castle stood on a green isolated low hill, about
half-way across the vale. To the left a river wound past; to the
right the beech forest extended as far as the eye could see. The
slope at their feet had been cleared of all but a few hawthorn
bushes. It was not enclosed, but a neatherd was there with his
cattle half a mile away, sitting himself at the foot of a beech,
while the cattle grazed below him.</p>
<p>Down in the valley the stockade began; it was not wide but long.
The enclosure extended on the left to the bank of the river, and
two fields on the other side of it. On the right it reached a mile
and a half or nearly, the whole of which was overlooked from the
spot where they had passed. Within the enclosures the corn crops
were green and flourishing; horses and cattle, ricks and various
buildings, were scattered about it. The town or cottages of the
serfs were on the bank of the river immediately beyond the castle.
On the Downs, which rose a mile or more on the other side of the
castle, sheep were feeding; part of the ridge was wooded and part
open. Thus the cultivated and enclosed valley was everywhere shut
in with woods and hills.</p>
<p>The isolated round hill on which the castle stood was itself
enclosed with a second stockade; the edge of the brow above that
again was defended by a stout high wall of flints and mortar,
crenellated at the top. There were no towers or bastions. An old
and ivy-grown building stood inside the wall; it dated from the
time of the ancients; it had several gables, and was roofed with
tiles. This was the dwelling-house. The gardens were situated on
the slope between the wall and the inner stockade. Peaceful as the
scene appeared, it had been the site of furious fighting not many
years ago. The Downs trended to the south, where the Romany and the
Zingari resided, and a keen watch was kept both from the wall and
from the hills beyond.</p>
<p>They now rode slowly down the slope, and in a few minutes
reached the barrier or gateway in the outer stockade. They had been
observed, and the guard called by the warden, but as they
approached were recognised, and the gate swang open before them.
Walking their horses they crossed to the hill, and were as easily
admitted to the second enclosure. At the gate of the wall they
dismounted, and waited while the warden carried the intelligence of
their arrival to the family. A moment later, and the Baron's son
advanced from the porch, and from the open window the Baroness and
Aurora beckoned to them.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-8" id="Chap2-8"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER VIII<br/> THYMA CASTLE</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Soon afterwards the hollow sound of the warden's horn, from the
watch over the gate of the wall, proclaimed the hour of noon, and
they all assembled for dinner in the banqueting chamber. The
apartment was on the ground floor, and separated from the larger
hall only by an internal wall. The house, erected in the time of
the ancients, was not designed for our present style of life; it
possessed, indeed, many comforts and conveniences which are
scarcely now to be found in the finest palaces, but it lacked the
breadth of construction which our architects have now in view.</p>
<p>In the front there were originally only two rooms, extensive for
those old days, but not sufficiently so for ours. One of these had
therefore been enlarged, by throwing into it a back room and part
of the entrance, and even then it was not long enough for the
Baron's retainers, and at feast-time a wooden shed was built
opposite, and up to the window, to continue, as it were, the
apartment out of doors. Workmen were busy putting up this shed when
they arrived.</p>
<p>The second apartment retained its ancient form, and was used as
the dining-room on ordinary days. It was lighted by a large window,
now thrown wide open that the sweet spring air might enter, which
window was the pride of the Baroness, for it contained more true
glass than any window in the palace of the Prince. The glass made
now is not transparent, but merely translucent; it indeed admits
light after a fashion, but it is thick and cannot be seen through.
These panes were almost all (the central casement wholly) of
ancient glass, preserved with the greatest care through the long
years past.</p>
<p>Three tables were arranged in an open square; the Baron and
Baroness's chairs of oak faced the window, the guests sat at the
other tables sideways to them, the servants moved on the outer
side, and thus placed the food before them without pushing against
or incommoding them. A fourth table was placed in a corner between
the fireplace and the window. At it sat the old nurse, the
housekeeper (frequently arising to order the servants), and the
Baron's henchman, who had taught him to ride, but now, grey and
aged, could not mount himself without assistance, and had long
ceased from active service.</p>
<p>Already eight or nine guests had arrived besides Felix and
Oliver. Some had ridden a great distance to be present at the House
Day. They were all nobles, richly dressed; one or two of the eldest
were wealthy and powerful men, and the youngest was the son and
heir of the Earl of Essiton, who was then the favourite at Court.
Each had come with his personal attendants; the young Lord Durand
brought with him twenty-five retainers, and six gentlemen friends,
all of whom were lodged in the town, the gentlemen taking their
meals at the castle at the same time as the Baron, but, owing to
lack of room, in another apartment by themselves. Durand was
placed, or rather, quietly helped himself to a seat, next to the
Lady Aurora, and of all the men there present, certainly there was
none more gallant and noble than he.</p>
<p>His dark eyes, his curling hair short but brought in a thick
curl over his forehead, his lips well shaped, his chin round and
somewhat prominent, the slight moustache (no other hair on the
face), formed the very ideal of what many women look for in a man.
But it was his bright, lively conversation, the way in which his
slightly swarthy complexion flushed with animation, the impudent
assurance and yet generous warmth of his manner, and, indeed, of
his feelings, which had given him the merited reputation of being
the very flower of the nobles.</p>
<p>With such a reputation, backed with the great wealth and power
of his father, gentlemen competed with each other to swell his
train; he could not, indeed, entertain all that came, and was often
besieged with almost as large a crowd as the Prince himself. He
took as his right the chair next to Aurora, to whom, indeed, he had
been paying unremitting attention all the morning. She was laughing
heartily as she sat down, at some sally of his upon a beauty at the
Court.</p>
<p>The elder men were placed highest up the tables, and nearest the
host, but to the astonishment of all, and not the least of himself,
Oliver was invited by the Baron to sit by his side. Oliver could
not understand this special mark of favour; the others, though far
too proud for a moment to resent what they might have deemed a
slight upon them, at once began to search their minds for a reason.
They knew the Baron as an old intriguer; they attached a meaning,
whether intended or not, to his smallest action.</p>
<p>Felix, crowded out, as it were, and unnoticed, was forced to
take his seat at the end of the table nearest that set apart in the
corner for the aged and honoured servitors of the family. Only a
few feet intervened between him and ancient henchmen; and he could
not but overhear their talk among themselves, whispered as it was.
He had merely shaken hands with Aurora; the crowd in the
drawing-room and the marked attentions of Durand had prevented the
exchange of a single word between them. As usual, the sense of
neglect and injury over which he had so long brooded with little or
no real cause (considering, of course, his position, and that the
world can only see our coats and not our hearts), under these
entirely accidental circumstances rose up again within him, and
blinded him to the actual state of things.</p>
<p>His seat, the lowest, and the nearest to the servitors, was in
itself a mark of the low estimation in which he was held. The Lord
Durand had been placed next to Aurora, as a direct encouragement to
him, and a direct hint to himself not to presume. Doubtless, Durand
had been at the castle many times, not improbably already been
accepted by the Baron, and not altogether refused by Aurora. As a
fact, though delighted with her beauty and conversation, Durand's
presence was entirely due to the will of his father, the Earl, who
wished to maintain friendly relations with Baron Thyma, and even
then he would not have come had not the lovely weather invited him
to ride into the forest.</p>
<p>It was, however, so far true, that though his presence was
accidental, yet he was fast becoming fascinated by one who, girl
though she was, was stronger in mind than he. Now Aurora, knowing
that he father's eye was on her, dared not look towards Felix, lest
by an open and pronounced conduct she should be the cause of his
being informed that his presence was not desirable. She knew that
the Baron only needed a pretext to interfere, and was anxious to
avoid offering him a chance.</p>
<p>Felix, seeing her glance bent downwards or towards her
companion, and never all the time turned to him, not unnaturally,
but too hastily, concluded that she had been dazzled by Durand and
the possibility of an alliance with his powerful family. He was
discarded, worthless, and of no account; he had nothing but his
sword; nay, he had not a sword, he was only an archer, a footman.
Angry, jealous, and burning with inward annoyance, despising
himself since all others despised him, scarce able to remain at the
table, Felix was almost beside himself, and did not answer nor heed
the remarks of the gentlemen sitting by him, who put him down as an
ill-bred churl.</p>
<p>For the form's sake, indeed, he put his lips to the
double-handled cup of fine ale, which continually circulated round
the table, and was never allowed to be put down; one servant had
nothing else to do but to see that its progress never stopped. But
he drank nothing, and ate nothing; he could not swallow. How
visionary, how weak and feeble now seemed the wild scheme of the
canoe and his proposed voyage! Even should it succeed, years must
elapse before he could accomplish anything substantial; while here
were men who really had what he could only think of or imagine.</p>
<p>The silver chain or sword-belt of Durand (the sword and the
dagger were not worn at the banquet, nor in the house, they were
received by the marshal, and deposited in his care, a precaution
against quarrelling), solid silver links passing over his shoulder,
were real actual things. All the magnificence that he could call up
by the exercise of his imagination, was but imagination; a dream no
more to be seen by others than the air itself.</p>
<p>The dinner went on, and the talk became more noisy. The trout,
the chicken, the thyme lamb (trapped on the hills by the
shepherds), the plover eggs, the sirloin, the pastry (the Baroness
superintended the making of it herself), all the profusion of the
table, rather set him against food than tempted him. Nor could he
drink the tiny drop, as it were, of ancient brandy, sent round to
each guest at the conclusion, precious as liquid gold, for it had
been handed down from the ancients, and when once the cask was
empty it could not be re-filled.</p>
<p>The dessert, the strawberries, the nuts and walnuts, carefully
preserved with a little salt, and shaken in the basket from time to
time that they might not become mouldy, the apples, the honey in
the comb with slices of white bread, nothing pleased him. Nor did
he drink, otherwise than the sip demanded by courtesy, of the thin
wine of Gloucester, costly as it was, grown in the vineyard there,
and shipped across the Lake, and rendered still more expensive by
risk of pirates. This was poured into flagons of maple wood, which,
like the earthenware cup of ale, were never allowed to touch the
board till the dinner was over.</p>
<p>Wearily the time went on; Felix glanced more and more often at
the sky seen through the casement, eagerly desiring to escape, and
at least to be alone. At last (how long it seemed!) the Baron rose,
and immediately the rest did the same, and they drank the health of
the Prince. Then a servitor brought in a pile of cigars upon a
carved wooden tray, like a large platter, but with a rim. "These,"
said the Baron, again rising (the signal to all to cease conversing
and to listen), "are a present from my gracious and noble friend
the Earl of Essiton" (he looked towards Durand), "not less kindly
carried by Lord Durand. I could have provided only our own coarse
tobacco; but these are the best Devon."</p>
<p>The ladies now left the table, Aurora escorted by Durand, the
Baroness by Oliver. Oliver, indeed, was in the highest spirits; he
had eaten heartily of all; especially the sweet thyme lamb, and
drunk as freely. He was in his element, his laugh the loudest, his
talk the liveliest. Directly Durand returned (he had gone even a
part of the way upstairs towards the drawing-room with Aurora, a
thing a little against etiquette) he took his chair, formality
being now at an end, and placed it by Oliver. They seemed to become
friends at once by sympathy of mind and taste.</p>
<p>Round them the rest gradually grouped themselves, so that
presently Felix, who did not move, found himself sitting alone at
the extreme end of the table; quite apart, for the old retainers,
who dined at the separate table, had quitted the apartment when the
wine was brought in. Freed from the restraint of the ladies, the
talk now became extremely noisy, the blue smoke from the long
cigars filled the great apartment; one only remained untouched,
that placed before Felix. Suddenly it struck him that thus sitting
alone and apart, he should attract attention; he, therefore, drew
his chair to the verge of the group, but remained silent, and as
far off as ever. Presently the arrival of five more guests caused a
stir and confusion, in the midst of which he escaped into the open
air.</p>
<p>He wandered towards the gate of the wall, passing the wooden
shed where the clink of hammers resounded, glanced at the sundial,
which showed the hour of three (three weary hours had they
feasted), and went out into the gardens. Still going on, he
descended the slope, and not much heeding whither he was going,
took the road that led into town. It consisted of some hundred or
more houses, built of wood and thatched, placed without plan or
arrangement on the bank of the stream. Only one long street ran
through it, the rest were mere by-ways.</p>
<p>All these were inhabited by the Baron's retainers, but the
number and apparently small extent of the houses did not afford
correct data for the actual amount of the population. In these days
the people (as is well known) find much difficulty in marrying; it
seems only possible for a certain proportion to marry, and hence
there are always a great number of young or single men out of all
ratio to the houses. At the sound of the bugle the Baron could
reckon on at least three hundred men flocking without a minute's
delay to man the wall; in an hour more would arrive from the outer
places, and by nightfall, if the summons went forth in the morning,
his shepherds and swineherds would arrive, and these together would
add some hundred and fifty to the garrison.</p>
<p>Next must be reckoned the armed servants of the house, the
Baron's personal attendants, the gentlemen who formed his train,
his sons and the male relations of the family; these certainly were
not less than fifty. Altogether over five hundred men, well armed
and accustomed to the use of their weapons, would range themselves
beneath his banner. Two of the buildings in he town were of brick
(the material carried hither, for there was no clay or stone
thereabouts); they were not far apart. The one was the Toll House,
where all merchants or traders paid the charges in corn or kind due
to the Baron; the other was the Court House, where he sat to
administer justice and decide causes, or to send the criminal to
the gibbet.</p>
<p>These alone of the buildings were of any age, for the wooden
houses were extremely subject to destruction by fire, and twice in
the Baron's time half the town had been laid in ashes, only to rise
again in a few weeks. Timber was so abundant and so ready of
access, it seemed a loss of labour to fetch stone or brick, or to
use the flints of the hills. About the doors of the two inns there
were gathered groups of people; among them the liveries of the
nobles visiting the castle were conspicuous; the place was full of
them, the stables were filled, and their horses were picketed under
the trees and even in the street.</p>
<p>Every minute the numbers increased as others arrived; men, too
(who had obtained permission of their lords), came in on foot, ten
or twelve travelling together for mutual protection, for the feuds
of their masters exposed them to frequent attack. All (except the
nobles) were disarmed at the barrier by the warden and guard, that
peace might be preserved in the enclosure. The folk at the moment
he passed were watching the descent of three covered waggons from
the forest track, in which were travelling the ladies of as many
noble families.</p>
<p>Some, indeed, of the youngest and boldest ride on horseback, but
the ladies chiefly move in these waggons, which are fitted up with
considerable comfort, and are necessary to sleep in when the camp
is formed by the wayside at night. None noticed him as he went by,
except a group of three cottage girls, and a serving-woman, an
attendant of a lady visitor at the castle. He heard them allude to
him; he quickened his pace, but heard one say, "He's nobody; he
hasn't even got a horse."</p>
<p>"Yes he is," replied the serving-woman; "he's Oliver's brother;
and I can tell you my lord Oliver is somebody; the Princess
Lucia—" and she made the motion of kissing with her lips.
Felix, ashamed and annoyed to the last degree, stepped rapidly from
the spot. The serving-woman, however, was right in a measure; the
real or supposed favour shown Oliver by the Prince's sister, the
Duchess of Deverell, had begun to be bruited abroad, and this was
the secret reason why the Baron had shown Oliver so much and so
marked an attention, even more than he had paid to Lord Durand.</p>
<p>Full well he knew the extraordinary influence possessed by
ladies of rank and position. From what we can learn out of the
scanty records of the past, it was so even in the days of the
ancients; it is a hundredfold more so in these times, when,
although every noble must of necessity be taught to read and write,
as a matter of fact the men do neither, but all the correspondence
of kings and princes, and the diplomatic documents, and notices,
and so forth, are one and all, almost without a single exception,
drawn up by women. They know the secret and hidden motives of
courts, and have this great advantage, that they can use their
knowledge without personal fear, since women are never seriously
interfered with, but are protected by all.</p>
<p>The one terrible and utterly shameful instance to the contrary
had not occurred at the time of which we are now speaking, and it
was and is still repudiated by every man, from the knight to the
boys who gather acorns for the swine. Oliver himself had no idea
whatever that he was regarded as a favourite lover of the Duchess;
he took the welcome that was held out to him as perfectly honest.
Plain, straightforward, and honest, Oliver, had he been openly
singled out by a queen, would have scorned to give himself an air
for such a reason. But the Baron, deep in intrigue this many a
year, looked more profoundly into the possibilities of the future
when he kept the young knight at his side.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-9" id="Chap2-9"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER IX<br/> SUPERSTITIONS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix was now outside the town and alone in the meadow which
bordered the stream; he knelt, and drank from it with the hollow of
his hand. He was going to ascend the hill beyond, and had already
reached the barrier upon that side, when he recollected that
etiquette demanded the presence of the guests at meal-times, and it
was now the hour for tea. He hastened back, and found the courtyard
of the castle crowded. Within, the staircase leading to the
Baroness's chamber (where tea was served) could scarcely be
ascended, what with the ladies and their courtiers, the long trains
of the serving-women, the pages winding their way in and out, the
servants endeavouring to pass, the slender pet greyhounds, the
inseparable companions of their mistresses.</p>
<p>By degrees, and exercising patience, he gained the upper floor
and entered the drawing-room. The Baroness alone sat at the table,
the guests wheresoever they chose, or chance carried them; for the
most part they stood, or leaned against the recess of the open
window. Of tea itself there was none; there had been no tea to be
had for love or money these fifty years past, and, indeed, its use
would have been forgotten, and the name only survived, had not some
small quantities been yet preserved and brought out on rare
occasions at the palaces. Instead, there was chicory prepared from
the root of the plant, grown for the purpose; fresh milk; fine ale
and mead; and wine from Gloucester. Butter, honey, and cake were
also on the table.</p>
<p>The guests helped themselves, or waited till the servants came
to them with wooden carved trays. The particular characteristic of
tea is the freedom from restraint; it is not considered necessary
to sit as at dinner or supper, nor to do as others do; each pleases
himself, and there is no ceremony. Yet, although so near Aurora,
Felix did not succeed in speaking to her; Durand still engaged her
attention whenever other ladies were not talking with her. Felix
found himself, exactly as at dinner-time, quite outside the circle.
There was a buzz of conversation around, but not a word of it was
addressed to him. Dresses brushed against him, but the fair owners
were not concerned even to acknowledge his existence.</p>
<p>Pushed by the jostling crowd aside from the centre of the floor,
Felix presently sat down, glad to rest at last, behind the open
door. Forgotten, he forgot; and, looking as it were out of the
present in a bitter reverie, scarcely knew where he was, except at
moments when he heard the well-known and loved voice of Aurora. A
servant after a while came to him with a tray; he took some honey
and bread. Almost immediately afterwards another servant came and
presented him with a plate, on which was a cup of wine, saying,
"With my lady's loving wishes."</p>
<p>As in duty bound, he rose and bowed to the Baroness; she smiled
and nodded; the circle which had looked to see who was thus
honoured, turned aside again, not recognising him. To send a guest
a plate with wine or food is the highest mark of esteem, and this
plate in especial was of almost priceless value, as Felix saw when
his confusion had abated. It was of the ancient china, now not to
be found in even the houses of the great.</p>
<p>In all that kingdom but five perfect plates were known to exist,
and two of these were at the palace. They are treasured as
heirlooms, and, if ever broken, can never be replaced. The very
fragments are rare; they are often set in panels, and highly
prized. The Baroness, glancing round her court, had noticed at last
the young man sitting in the obscure corner behind the door; she
remembered, not without some twinge of conscience, that his house
was their ancient ally and sworn hearth-friend.</p>
<p>She knew, far better than the Baron, how deeply her daughter
loved him; better, perhaps, even than Aurora herself. She, too,
naturally hoped a higher alliance for Aurora; yet she was a true
woman, and her heart was stronger than her ambition. The trifle of
the wine was, of course, nothing; but it was open and marked
recognition. She expected that Felix (after his wont in former
times, before love or marriage was thought of for Aurora) would
have come upon this distinct invitation, and taken his stand behind
her, after the custom. But as he did not come, fresh guests and the
duties of hospitality distracted her attention, and she again
forgot him.</p>
<p>He was, indeed, more hurt than pleased with the favour that had
been shown him; it seemed to him (though really prompted by the
kindest feeling) like a bone cast at a dog. He desired to be so
regarded that no special mark of favour should be needed. It simply
increased his discontent. The evening wore on, the supper began;
how weary it seemed to him, that long and jovial supper, with the
ale that ran in a continual stream, the wine that ceaselessly
circled round, the jokes, and bustle, and laughter, the welcome to
guests arriving; the cards, and chess, and games that succeeded it,
the drinking, and drinking, and drinking, till the ladies again
left; then drinking yet more freely.</p>
<p>He slipped away at the first opportunity, and having first
strolled to and fro on the bowling green, wet with dew, at the rear
of the castle, asked for his bedroom. It was some time before he
could get attended to; he stood alone at the foot of the staircase
while others went first (their small coins bought them attention),
till at last a lamp was brought to him, and his chamber named. This
chamber, such as it was, was the only pleasure, and that a
melancholy one, he had had that day.</p>
<p>Though overflowing with guests, so that the most honoured
visitors could not be accommodated within the castle, and only the
ladies could find sleeping room there, yet the sacred law of
honour, the pledge of the hearth-friend passed three generations
ago, secured him this privilege. The hearth-friend must sleep
within, if a king were sent without. Oliver, of course, would
occupy the same room, but he was drinking and shouting a song
below, so that for a while Felix had the chamber to himself.</p>
<p>It pleased him, because it was the room in which he had always
slept when he visited the place from a boy, when, half afraid and
yet determined to venture, he had first come through the lonely
forest alone. How well he remembered that first time! the autumn
sunshine on the stubble at Old House, and the red and brown leaves
of the forest as he entered; how he entered on foot, and twice
turned back, and twice adventured again, till he got so deep into
the forest that it seemed as far to return as to advance. How he
started at the sudden bellow of two stags, and the clatter of their
horns as they fought in the brake close by, and how beautiful the
castle looked when presently he emerged from the bushes and looked
down upon it!</p>
<p>This was the very room he slept in; the Baroness, mother-like,
came to see that he was comfortable. Here he had slept every time
since; here he had listened in the early morning for Aurora's
footfall as she passed his door, for the ladies rose earlier than
did the men. He now sat down by the open window; it was a brilliant
moonlight night, warm and delicious, and the long-drawn note of the
nightingale came across the gardens from the hawthorn bushes
without the inner stockade. To the left he could see the line of
the hills, to the right the forest; all was quiet there, but every
now and then the sound of a ballad came round the castle, a sound
without recognizable words, inarticulate merriment.</p>
<p>If he started upon the hazardous voyage he contemplated, and for
which he had been so long preparing, should he ever sleep there
again, so near the one he loved? Was it not better to be poor and
despised, but near her, than to attempt such an expedition,
especially as the chances (as his common sense told him) were all
against him? Yet he could not stay; he <i>must</i> do it, and he
tried to stifle the doubt which insisted upon arising in his mind.
Then he recurred to Durand; he remembered that not once on that day
had he exchanged one single word, beyond the first and ordinary
salutation, with Aurora.</p>
<p>Might she not, had she chosen, have arranged a moment's
interview? Might she not easily have given him an opportunity? Was
it not clear that she was ashamed of her girlish fancy for a
portionless and despised youth? If so, was it worth while to go
upon so strange an enterprise for her sake? But if so, also, was
life worth living, and might he not as well go and seek
destruction?</p>
<p>While this conflict of feeling was proceeding, he chanced to
look towards the table upon which he had carelessly placed his
lamp, and observed, what in his agitated state of mind he had
previously overlooked, a small roll of manuscript tied round with
silk. Curious in books, he undid the fastening, and opened the
volume. There was not much writing, but many singular diagrams, and
signs arranged in circles. It was, in fact, a book of magic,
written at the dictation, as the preface stated, of one who had
been for seven years a slave among the Romany.</p>
<p>He had been captured, and forced to work for the tent to which
his owners belonged. He had witnessed their worship and their
sorceries; he had seen the sacrifice to the full moon, their chief
goddess, and the wild extravagances with which it was accompanied.
He had learnt some few of their signs, and, upon escaping, had
reproduced them from memory. Some were engraved on the stones set
in their rings; some were carved on wooden tablets, some drawn with
ink on parchment; but, with all, their procedure seemed to be the
repetition of certain verses, and then a steady gaze upon the
picture. Presently they became filled with rapture, uttered what
sounded as the wildest ravings, and (their women especially)
prophesied of the future.</p>
<p>A few of the signs he understood the meaning of, but the others
he owned were unknown to him. At the end of the book were several
pages of commentary, describing the demons believed in and
worshipped by the Romany, demons which haunted the woods and hills,
and against which it was best to be provided with amulets blessed
by the holy fathers of St. Augustine. Such demons stole on the
hunter at noonday, and, alarmed at the sudden appearance, upon
turning his head (for demons invariably approach from behind, and
their presence is indicated by a shudder in the back), he toppled
into pits hidden by fern, and was killed.</p>
<p>Or, in the shape of a dog, they ran between the traveller's
legs; or as woman, with tempting caresses, lured him from the way
at nightfall into the leafy recesses, and then instantaneously
changing into vast bat-like forms, fastened on his throat and
sucked his blood. The terrible screams of such victims had often
been heard by the warders at the outposts. Some were invisible, and
yet slew the unwary by descending unseen upon him, and choking him
with a pressure as if the air had suddenly become heavy.</p>
<p>But none of these were, perhaps, so much to be dreaded as the
sweetly-formed and graceful ladies of the fern. These were
creatures, not of flesh and blood, and yet not incorporeal like the
demons, nor were they dangerous to the physical man, doing no
bodily injury. The harm they did was by fascinating the soul so
that it revolted from all religion and all the rites of the Church.
Once resigned to the caress of the fern-woman, the unfortunate was
lured farther and farther from the haunts of men, until at last he
wandered into the unknown forest, and was never seen again. These
creatures were usually found among the brake fern, nude, but the
lower limbs and body hidden by the green fronds, their white arms
and shoulders alone visible, and their golden hair aglow with the
summer sunshine.</p>
<p>Demons there were, too, of the streams, and demons dwelling in
the midst of the hills; demons that could travel only in the
moonbeams, and others that floated before the stormy winds and
hurled the wretched wanderer to destruction, or crushed him with
the overthrown trees. In proof of this the monk asked the reader if
he had not heard of huge boughs falling from trees without visible
cause, suddenly and without warning, and even of trees themselves
in full foliage, in calm weather, toppling with a crash, to the
imminent danger or the death of those who happened to be passing.
Let all these purchase the amulets of St. Augustine, concluded the
writer, who it appeared was a monk in whose monastery the escaped
prisoner had taken refuge, and who had written down his relation
and copied his rude sketches.</p>
<p>Felix pored over the strange diagrams, striving to understand
the hidden meaning; some of them he thought were alchemical signs,
and related to the making of gold, especially as the prisoner
stated the Romany possessed much more of that metal in the tents
than he had seen in the palaces of our kings. Whether they had a
gold mine from whence they drew it, or whether they had the art of
transmutation, he knew not, but he had heard allusions to the
wealth in the mountain of the apple trees, which he supposed to be
a mystical phrase.</p>
<p>When Felix at last looked up, the lamp was low, the moonbeams
had entered and fell upon the polished floor, and from the window
he could see a long white ghostly line of mist where a streamlet
ran at the base of the slope by the forest. The songs were silent;
there was no sound save the distant neigh of a horse and the heavy
tramp of a guest coming along the gallery. Half bewildered by
poring over the magic scroll, full of the signs and the demons, and
still with a sense of injury and jealousy cankering his heart,
Felix retired to his couch, and, weary beyond measure, instantly
fell asleep.</p>
<p>In his unsettled state of mind it did not once occur to him to
ask himself how the manuscript came to be upon his table. Rare as
they were, books were not usually put upon the tables of guests,
and at an ordinary time he would certainly have thought it
peculiar. The fact was, that Aurora, whom all day he had inwardly
accused of forgetting him, had placed it there for him with her own
hands. She, too, was curious in books and fond of study. She had
very recently bought the volume from a merchant who had come thus
far, and who valued it the least of all his wares.</p>
<p>She knew that Felix had read and re-read every other scrap of
writing there was in the castle, and thought that this strange book
might interest him, giving, as it did, details of those powers of
the air in which almost all fully believed. Unconscious of this
attention, Felix fell asleep, angry and bitter against her. When,
half an hour afterwards, Oliver blundered into the room, a little
unsteady on his legs, notwithstanding his mighty strength, he
picked up the roll, glanced at it, flung it down with contempt, and
without a minute's delay sought and obtained slumber.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-10" id="Chap2-10"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER X<br/> THE FEAST</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>At ten in the morning next day the feast began with a drama from
Sophocles, which was performed in the open air. The theatre was in
the gardens between the wall and the inner stockade; the spectators
sat on the slope, tier above tier; the actors appeared upon a green
terrace below, issuing from an arbour and passing off behind a
thick box-hedge on the other side of the terrace. There was no
scenery whatever.</p>
<p>Aurora had selected the Antigone. There were not many dramatists
from whom to choose, for so many English writers, once famous, had
dropped out of knowledge and disappeared. Yet some of the far more
ancient Greek and Roman classics remained because they contained
depth and originality of ideas in small compass. They had been
copied in manuscripts by thoughtful men from the old printed books
before they mouldered away, and their manuscripts being copied
again, these works were handed down. The books which came into
existence with printing had never been copied by the pen, and had
consequently nearly disappeared. Extremely long and diffuse, it was
found, too, that so many of them were but enlargements of ideas or
sentiments which had been expressed in a few words by the classics.
It is so much easier to copy an epigram of two lines than a printed
book of hundreds of pages, and hence it was that Sophocles had
survived while much more recent writers had been lost.</p>
<p>From a translation Aurora had arranged several of his dramas.
Antigone was her favourite, and she wished Felix to see it. In some
indefinable manner the spirit of the ancient Greeks seemed to her
in accord with the times, for men had or appeared to have so little
control over their own lives that they might well imagine
themselves overruled by destiny. Communication between one place
and another was difficult, the division of society into castes, and
the iron tyranny of arms, prevented the individual from making any
progress in lifting himself out of the groove in which he was born,
except by the rarest opportunity, unless specially favoured by
fortune. As men were born so they lived; they could not advance,
and when this is the case the idea of Fate is always predominant.
The workings of destiny, the Irresistible overpowering both the
good and the evil-disposed, such as were traced in the Greek drama,
were paralleled in the lives of many a miserable slave at that day.
They were forced to endure, for there was no possibility of
effort.</p>
<p>Aurora saw this and felt it deeply; ever anxious as she was for
the good of all, she saw the sadness that reigned even in the midst
of the fresh foliage of spring and among the flowers. It was Fate;
it was Sophocles.</p>
<p>She took the part of the heroine herself, clad in Greek costume;
Felix listened and watched, absorbed in his love. Never had that
ancient drama appeared so beautiful as then, in the sunlight; the
actors stepped upon the daisied sward, and the song of birds was
all their music.</p>
<p>While the play was still proceeding, those who were to form the
usual procession had already been assembling in the court before
the castle, and just after noon, to the sound of the trumpet, the
Baron, with his youngest son beside him (the eldest was at Court),
left the porch, wearing his fur-lined short mantle, his collar, and
golden spurs, and the decoration won so many years before; all the
insignia of his rank. He walked; his war-horse, fully caparisoned,
with axe at the saddle-bow, was led at his right side, and upon the
other came a knight carrying the banneret of the house.</p>
<p>The gentlemen of the house followed closely, duly marshalled in
ranks, and wearing the gayest dress; the leading retainers fully
armed, brought up the rear. Immediately upon issuing from the gate
of the wall, the procession was met and surrounded by the crowd,
carrying large branches of may in bloom, flowers, and green willow
boughs. The flowers they flung before him on the ground; the
branches they bore with them, chanting old verses in honour of the
family. The route was through the town, where the Baron stopped at
the door of the Court House, and proclaimed a free pardon to all
serfs (who were released within a few minutes) not guilty of the
heavier crimes.</p>
<p>Thence he went to the pasture just beyond, carefully mown close
and swept for the purpose, where the May-pole stood, wreathed with
flowers and green branches. Beneath it he deposited a bag of money
for distribution upon a carved butt placed there, the signal that
the games were open. Instantly the fiddles began to play, and the
feast really commenced. At the inns ale was served out freely (at
the Baron's charge), carts, too, came down from the castle laden
with ale and cooked provisions. Wishing them joy, the Baron
returned by the same road to the castle, where dinner was already
served in the hall and the sheds that had been erected to enlarge
the accommodation.</p>
<p>In the afternoon there were foot-races, horse-races, and leaping
competitions, and the dances about the May-pole were prolonged far
into the night. The second day, early in the morning, the barriers
were opened, and trials of skill with the blunt sword, jousting
with the blunt lance at the quintain, and wrestling began, and
continued almost till sunset. Tournament with sharpened lance or
sword, when the combatants fight with risk of serious wounds, can
take place only in the presence of the Prince or his deputy. But in
these conflicts sufficiently severe blows were given to disable the
competitors.</p>
<p>On the third day there was a set battle in the morning between
fifteen men on each side, armed with the usual buckler or small
shield, and stout single-sticks instead of swords. This combat
excited more interest than all the duels that had preceded it; the
crowd almost broke down the barriers, and the cheering and cries of
encouragement could be heard upon the hills. Thrice the combatants
rested from the engagement, and thrice at the trumpet call started
again to meet each other, at least those who had sustained the
first onslaught.</p>
<p>Blood, indeed, was not shed (for the iron morions saved their
skulls), but nearly half of the number required assistance to reach
the tents pitched for their use. Then came more feasting, the final
dinner prolonged till six in the evening, when the company,
constantly rising from their seats, cheered the Baron, and drank to
the prosperity of the house. After the horn blew at six, the guests
who had come from a distance rapidly dispersed (their horses were
already waiting), for they were anxious to pass the fifteen miles
of forest before nightfall. Those on foot, and those ladies who had
come in covered waggons, stayed till next morning, as they could
not travel so speedily. By seven or eight the castle courtyard was
comparatively empty, and the Baron, weary from the mere bodily
efforts of saying farewell to so many, had flung himself at full
length on a couch in the drawing-room.</p>
<p>During the whole of this time Felix had not obtained a single
moment with Aurora; her time, when not occupied in attending to the
guests, was always claimed by Lord Durand. Felix, after the
short-lived but pure pleasure he had enjoyed in watching her upon
the grass-grown stage, had endured three days of misery. He was
among the crowd, he was in the castle itself, he sat at table with
the most honoured visitors, yet he was distinct from all. There was
no sympathy between them and him. The games, the dancing, the
feasting and laughter, the ceaseless singing and shouting, and
jovial jostling, jarred upon him.</p>
<p>The boundless interest the people took in the combats, and
especially that of the thirty, seemed to him a strange and
inexplicable phenomenon. It did not excite him in the least; he
could turn his back upon it without hesitation. He would, indeed,
have left the crowd, and spent the day in the forest, or on the
hills, but he could not leave Aurora. He must be near her; he must
see her, though he was miserable. Now he feared that the last
moment would come, and that he should not exchange a word with
her.</p>
<p>He could not, with any show of pretext, prolong his stay beyond
the sunset; all were already gone, with the exceptions mentioned.
It would be against etiquette to remain longer, unless specially
invited, and he was not specially invited. Yet he lingered, and
lingered. His horse was ready below; the groom, weary of holding
the bridle, had thrown it over an iron hook in the yard, and gone
about other business. The sun perceptibly declined, and the shadow
of the beeches of the forest began to descend the grassy slope.
Still he stayed, restlessly moving, now in the dining chamber, now
in the hall, now at the foot of the staircase, with an unpleasant
feeling that the servants looked at him curiously, and were
watching him.</p>
<p>Oliver had gone long since, riding with his new friend Lord
Durand; they must by now be half-way through the forest. Forced by
the inexorable flight of time, he put his foot upon the staircase
to go up to the drawing-room and bid farewell to the Baroness. He
ascended it, step by step, as a condemned person goes to his doom.
He stayed to look out of the open windows as he went by; anything
to excuse delay to himself. He reached the landing at last, and had
taken two steps towards the door, when Aurora's maid, who had been
waiting there an hour or more for the opportunity, brushed past
him, and whispered, "The Rose arbour."</p>
<p>Without a word he turned, hastened down the stairs, ran through
the castle yard, out at the gate, and, entering the gardens between
the wall and the inner stockade, made for the arbour on the terrace
where the drama had been enacted. Aurora was not there; but as he
looked round, disappointed, she came from the Filbert walk, and,
taking his arm, led him to the arbour. They sat down without a
word. In a moment she placed her head upon his shoulder; he did not
respond. She put her arm (how warm it felt!) about his neck; he
yielded stiffly and ungraciously to the pressure; she drew down his
head, and kissed him. His lips touched but did not press hers; they
met, but did not join. In his sullen and angry silence he would not
look. She drew still nearer, and whispered his name.</p>
<p>Then he broke out: he pushed her away; his petty jealousy and
injured self-esteem poured out upon her.</p>
<p>"I am not the heir to an earldom," he said; "I do not ride with
a score of gentlemen at my back. They have some wonderful diamonds,
have they not—<i>Countess?</i>"</p>
<p>"Felix!"</p>
<p>"It is no use. Yes, your voice is sweet, I know. But you, all of
you, despise me. I am nothing, no one!"</p>
<p>"You are all, <i>everything</i>, to me."</p>
<p>"You were with—with Durand the whole time."</p>
<p>"I could not help myself."</p>
<p>"Not help yourself! Do you think I believe that?"</p>
<p>"Felix, dear. I tell you I could not help myself; I could not,
indeed. You do not know all—"</p>
<p>"No, probably not. I do not know the terms of the marriage
contract."</p>
<p>"Felix, there is no such thing. Why, what has come to you? How
pale you look! Sit down!" for he had risen.</p>
<p>"I cannot, Aurora, dear; I cannot! Oh, what shall I do? I love
you so!"</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-11" id="Chap2-11"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XI<br/> AURORA</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix fell on the seat beside her, burying his face in the folds
of her dress; he sobbed, not with tears, but choking passion. She
held him to her heart as if he had been a child, stroking his hair
and kissing it, whispering to him, assuring him that her love was
his, that she was unchanged. She told him that it was not her
fault. A little while before the feast the Baron had suddenly
broken out into a fit of temper, such as she had never seen him
indulge in previously; the cause was pressure put upon him by his
creditors. Unpleasant truths had escaped him; amongst the rest, his
dislike, his positive disapproval of the tacit engagement they had
entered into.</p>
<p>He declared that if the least outward sign of it appeared before
the guests that were expected, he would order Felix to leave the
place, and cancel the hearth-friendship, no matter what the
consequence. It was clear that he was set upon a wealthy and
powerful alliance for her; that the Earl was either coming, or
would send his son, he knew; and he knew that nothing so repels a
possible suitor as the rumour that the lady has a previous
engagement. In short, he made it a condition of Felix's presence
being tolerated at all, that Aurora should carefully abstain from
showing the slightest attention to him; that she should ignore his
existence.</p>
<p>Nor could she prevent Durand following her without a marked
refusal to listen to his conversation, a refusal which would most
certainly at once have brought about the dreaded explosion. She
thought it better, under the circumstances, to preserve peace, lest
intercourse between her and Felix should be entirely broken off for
ever. This was the secret history of the apparent indifference and
neglect which had so deeply hurt him. The explanation, accompanied
as it was with so many tender expressions and caresses, soothed
him; he returned her kisses and became calmer. He could not doubt
her, for in his heart he had suspected something of the kind long
since.</p>
<p>Yet it was not so much the explanation itself, nor even the love
she poured upon him, as the mere fact of her presence so near that
brought him to himself. The influence of her steadfast nature, of
her clear, broad, straightforward view of things, the decision of
her character, the high, unselfish motives which animated her, all
together supplied that which was wanting in himself. His
indecision, his too impressionable disposition, which checked and
stayed the force of his talent, and counteracted the determination
of a naturally iron will; these, as it were, were relieved; in a
word, with her he became himself.</p>
<p>How many times he had told her as much! How many times she had
replied that it was not herself, but that in which she believed,
that was the real cause of this feeling! It was that ancient and
true religion; the religion of the primitive church, as she found
it in the fragments of the Scriptures that had come down from the
ancients.</p>
<p>Aurora had learnt this faith from childhood; it was, indeed, a
tradition of the house preserved unbroken these hundred years in
the midst of the jarring creeds, whose disciples threatened and
destroyed each other. On the one hand, the gorgeous rite of the
Vice-Pope, with the priests and the monks, claimed dominion, and
really held a large share, both over the body and the soul; on the
other, the Leaguers, with their bold, harsh, and flowerless creed,
were equally over-bearing and equally bigoted. Around them the
Bushmen wandered without a god; the Romany called upon the full
moon. Within courts and cities the gay and the learned alike mocked
at all faith, and believed in gold alone.</p>
<p>Cruelty reigned everywhere; mercy, except in the name of honour,
there was none; humanity was unknown. A few, a very few only, had
knowledge of or held to the leading tenets, which, in the time of
the ancients, were assented to by everyone, such as the duty of
humanity to all, the duty of saving and protecting life, of
kindness and gentleness. These few, with their pastors, simple and
unassuming, had no power or influence; yet they existed here and
there, a living protest against the lawlessness and brutality of
the time.</p>
<p>Among these the house of Thyma had in former days been
conspicuous, but of late years the barons of Thyma had, more from
policy than from aught else, rather ignored their ancestral faith,
leaning towards the League, which was then powerful in that
kingdom. To have acted otherwise would have been to exclude himself
from all appointments. But Aurora, learning the old faith at her
mother's knee, had become too deeply imbued with its moral beauty
to consent to this course. By degrees, as she grew up, it became in
her a passion; more than a faith, a passion; the object of her
life.</p>
<p>A girl, indeed, can do but little in our iron days, but that
little she did. The chapel beside the castle, long since fallen to
decay, was, at her earnest request, repaired; a pastor came and
remained as chaplain, and services, of the simplest kind, but
serious and full of meaning, took place twice a week. To these she
drew as many as possible of the inhabitants of the enclosure; some
even came from afar once now and then to attend them.
Correspondence was carried on with the remnant of the faith.</p>
<p>That no one might plead ignorance (for there was up to the date
no written record) Aurora set herself the task of reducing the
traditions which had been handed down to writing. When the
manuscript was at last completed it occupied her months to
transcribe copies of it for circulation; and she still continued to
make copies, which were sent by messengers and by the travelling
merchants to the markets, and even across the sea. Apart from its
intrinsically elevating character, the mere mental labour expended
on this work had undoubtedly strengthened a naturally fine
intellect. As she said, it was the faith, the hope that that faith
would one day be recognised, which gave her so much influence over
others.</p>
<p>Upon this one thing only they differed; Felix did not oppose,
did not even argue, he was simply untouched. It was not that he
believed in anything else, nor that he doubted; he was merely
indifferent. He had too great a natural aptitude for the physical
sciences, and too clear a mind, to accept that which was taught by
the one or the other of the two chief opposing parties. Nor could
he join in the ridicule and derision of the gay courtiers, for the
mystery of existence had impressed him deeply while wandering alone
in the forest. But he stood aloof; he smiled and listened,
unconvinced; like the wild creatures of the forest, he had no ears
for these matters. He loved Aurora, that was all.</p>
<p>But he felt the influence just the same; with all his powers of
mind and contempt of superstitions in others, he could not at times
shake off the apprehensions aroused by untoward omens, as when he
stepped upon the adder in the woods. Aurora knew nothing of such
things; her faith was clear and bright like a star; nothing could
alarm her, or bring uneasiness of mind. This beautiful calm, not
cold, but glowing with hope and love, soothed him.</p>
<p>That evening, with her hope and love, with her message of trust,
she almost persuaded him. He almost turned to what she had so long
taught. He almost repented of that hardness of heart, that
unutterable distance, as it were, between him and other men, which
lay at the bottom of his proposed expedition. He opened his lips to
confess to her his purpose, and had he done so assuredly she would
have persuaded him from it. But in the very act of speaking, he
hesitated. It was characteristic of him to do so. Whether she
instinctively felt that there was something concealed from her, or
guessed that the discontent she knew he had so long endured was
coming to a point, or feared lest what she had told him might drive
him to some ill-considered act, she begged him with all the power
of her love to do nothing hasty, or in despair, nothing that would
separate them. He threw his arms around her, he pressed her closely
to him, he trembled with the passion and the struggle within
him.</p>
<p>"My lady calls for you, Mademoiselle," said a voice; it was
Aurora's maid who had kept watch. "She has asked for you some time
since. Someone is coming into the garden!"</p>
<p>There was no help for it; Aurora kissed him, and was gone before
he could come to himself. How long the interview had lasted (time
flies swiftly in such sweet intercourse), or how long he sat there
after she left, he could not tell; but when he went out already the
dusk was gathering, the sun had gone down, and in the east the as
yet pale orb of the moon was rising over the hills. As if in a
dream he walked with unsteady steps to the castle stable; his horse
had been put back, and the grooms suggested to him that it was
better not to attempt the forest at night. But he was determined;
he gave them all the coin he had about him, it was not much, but
more than they had expected.</p>
<p>They ran beside him to the barrier; advising him as they ran, as
he would go, to string his bow and loosen an arrow in the girdle,
and above all, not to loiter, or let his horse walk, but to keep
him at as sharp a trot as he could. The fact that so many wealthy
persons had assembled at the castle for the feast would be sure to
be known to the banditti (the outlaws of the cities and the escaped
serfs). They were certain to be on the look out for travellers; let
him beware.</p>
<p>His ears tingled and his head felt hot, as if the blood had
rushed into it (it was the violence of the emotion that he had
felt), as he rode from the barrier, hearing, and yet without
conscious knowledge of what they said. They watched him up the
slope, and saw him disappear from sight under the dark beeches of
the forest.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-12" id="Chap2-12"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XII<br/> NIGHT IN THE FOREST</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>At first Felix rode quickly, but his horse stumbling, though
accustomed to the woods, warned him to be more careful. The passage
of so many horsemen in the last few days had cut up and destroyed
the track, which was nothing but a green path, and the covered
waggons had of course assisted in rendering it rough and broken. He
therefore rode slowly, and giving his horse his head, he picked his
way of his own accord at the side of the road, often brushing
against the underwood.</p>
<p>Still, indeed, absorbed by the feelings which had almost
mastered him in the arbour, and thinking of Aurora, he forgot where
he was, till the dismal howling of wood-dogs deep in the forest
woke him. It was almost pitch dark under the tall beeches, the
highest of the trees preventing the beams of the moon from
illuminating the path till later in the night. Like a curtain the
thick foliage above shut out the sky, so that no star was visible.
When the wood-dogs ceased there was no sound beyond the light fall
of the horse's hoofs as he walked upon the grass. Darkness and
silence prevailed; he could see nothing. He spoke to his horse and
patted his neck; he stepped a little faster and lifted his head,
which he had held low as if making his way by scent.</p>
<p>The gloom weighed upon him, unhappy as he was. Often as he had
voluntarily sought the loneliness of the woods, now in this state
of mind, it oppressed him; he remembered that beyond the beeches
the ground was open and cleared by a forest fire, and began to be
anxious to reach it. It seemed an hour, but it really was only a
few minutes, when the beeches became thinner and wider apart, the
foliage above ceased, and the stars shone. Before him was the open
space he had desired, sloping to the right hand, the tall grass
grey-green in the moonlight, and near at hand sparkling with
dew.</p>
<p>Amongst it stood the crooked and charred stems of furze with
which it had been covered before the fire passed. A white owl
floated rather than flew by, following the edge of the forest; from
far down the slope came the chattering notes of a brook-sparrow,
showing that there was water in the hollow. Some large animal moved
into the white mist that hung there and immediately concealed it,
like a cloud upon the ground. He was not certain in the dim light,
and with so momentary and distant a view, but supposed from its
size that it must have been a white or dun wood-cow.</p>
<p>Ahead, across the open, rose the dark top of the fir trees
through which the route ran. Instead of the relief which he had
anticipated as he rode towards them, the space clear of trees
around seemed to expose him to the full view of all that might be
lurking in the forest. As he approached the firs and saw how dark
it was beneath them, the shadowy depths suggested uncertain shapes
hiding therein, and his memory immediately reverted to the book of
magic he had read at the castle.</p>
<p>There could not be such things, and yet no one in his heart
doubted their existence; deny it as they might with their tongues
as they sat at the supper-table and handed round the ale, out of
doors in the night, the haste to pass the haunted spot, the bated
breath, and the fearful glances cast around, told another tale. He
endeavoured to call philosophy to his aid; he remembered, too, how
many nights he had spent in the deepest forest without seeing
anything, and without even thinking of such matters. He reproved
himself for his folly, and asked himself if ever he could hope to
be a successful leader of men who started at a shadow. In vain: the
tone of his mind had been weakened by the strain it had
undergone.</p>
<p>Instead of strengthening him, the teachings of philosophy now
seemed cold and feeble, and it occurred to him that possibly the
belief of the common people (fully shared by their religious
instructors) was just as much entitled to credence as these mere
suppositions and theories. The details of the volume recurred to
his mind; the accurate description of the demons of the forest and
the hill, and especially the horrible vampires enfolding the victim
with outstretched wings. In spite of himself, incredulous, yet
excited, he pressed his horse to greater speed, though the track
was narrow and very much broken under the firs. He obeyed, and
trotted, but reluctantly, and needed continual urging.</p>
<p>The yellow spark of a glowworm shining by a bush made him set
his teeth; trifling and well known as it was, the light suddenly
seen thrilled him with the terror of the unexpected. Strange
rushings sounded among the fern, as if the wings of a demon brushed
it as he travelled. Felix knew that they were caused by rabbits
hastening off, or a boar bounding away, yet they increased the
feverish excitement with which he was burdened. Though dark beneath
the firs, it was not like the darkness of the beeches; these trees
did not form a perfect canopy overhead everywhere. In places he
could see where a streak of moonlight came aslant through an
opening and reached the ground. One such streak fell upon the track
ahead; the trees there had decayed and fallen, and a broad band of
light lit up the way.</p>
<p>As he approached it and had almost entered, suddenly something
shot towards him in the air; a flash, as it were, as if some object
had crossed the streak, and was rendered visible for the tenth of a
second, like a mote in the sunbeams. At the same instant of time,
the horse, which he had pressed to go faster, put his foot into a
rut or hole, and stumbled, and Felix was flung so far forward that
he only saved himself from being thrown by clinging to his neck. A
slight whizzing sound passed over his head, followed immediately by
a sharp tap against a tree in his rear.</p>
<p>The thing happened in the twinkling of an eye, but he recognised
the sound; it was the whiz of a crossbow bolt, which had missed his
head, and buried its point in a fir. The stumble saved him; the
bolt would have struck his head or chest had not the horse gone
nearly on his knee. The robber had so planned his ambush that his
prey should be well seen, distinct in the moonlight, so that his
aim might be sure. Recovering himself, the horse, without needing
the spur, as if he recognised the danger to his rider, started
forward at full speed, and raced, regardless of ruts, along the
track. Felix, who had hardly got into his seat again, could for
awhile but barely restrain it, so wildly he fled. He must have been
carried within a few yards of the bandit, but saw nothing, neither
did a second bolt follow him; the crossbow takes time to bend, and
if the robber had companions they were differently armed.</p>
<p>He was a furlong or more from the spot before he quite realized
the danger he had escaped. His bow was unstrung in his hand, his
arrows were all in the quiver; thus, had the bolt struck him, even
if the wound had not been mortal (as it most likely would have
been) he could have made no resistance. How foolish to disregard
the warnings of the grooms at the castle! It was now too late; all
he could do was to ride. Dreading every moment to be thrown, he
pushed on as fast as the horse would go. There was no pursuit, and
after a mile or so, as he left the firs and entered the ash woods,
he slackened somewhat. It was, indeed, necessary, for here the
hoofs of preceding horsemen had poached the turf (always damp under
ash) into mud. It was less dark, for the boughs of the ashes did
not meet above.</p>
<p>As he passed, wood-pigeons rose with loud clatterings from their
roosting-places, and once or twice he saw in the gloom the fiery
phosphoric eye-balls of the grey wood-cats. How gladly he
recognised presently the change from trees to bushes, when he rode
out from the thick ashes among the low hawthorns, and knew that he
was within a mile or so of the South Barrier at home! Already he
heard the song of the nightingale, the long note which at night
penetrates so far; the nightingale, which loves the hawthorn and
the neighbourhood of man. Imperceptibly he increased the speed
again; the horse, too, knew that he was nearing home, and responded
willingly.</p>
<p>The track was much broader and fairly good, but he knew that at
one spot where it was marshy it must be cut up. There he went at
the side, almost brushing a projecting maple bush. Something struck
the horse, he fancied the rebound of a bough; he jumped, literally
jumped, like a buck, and tore along the road. With one foot out of
the stirrup, it was with the utmost difficulty he stuck to his
seat; he was not riding, but holding on for a moment or two.
Presently recovering from the jolt, he endeavoured to check him,
but the bit was of no avail; the animal was beside himself with
terror, and raced headlong till they reached the barrier. It was,
of course, closed, and the warder was asleep; so that, until he
dismounted, and kicked and shouted, no one challenged him.</p>
<p>Then the warder, spear in hand, appeared with his lantern, but
recognising the voice, ran to the gate. Within the gate a few yards
there were the embers of a fire, and round it a bivouac of footmen
who had been to the feast, and had returned thus far before
nightfall. Hearing the noise, some of them arose, and came round
him, when one immediately exclaimed and asked if he was wounded.
Felix replied that he was not, but looking at his foot where the
man pointed, saw that it was covered with blood. But, upon close
examination, there was no cut or incision; he was not hurt. The
warder now called to them, and showed a long deep scratch on the
near flank of the horse, from which the blood was dripping.</p>
<p>It was such a scratch as might have been made with an iron nail,
and, without hesitation, they all put it down to a Bushman's spud.
Without doubt, the Bushman, hearing Felix approach, had hidden in
the maple bush, and, as he passed, struck with his nail-like
dagger; but, miscalculating the speed at which the horse was going,
instead of piercing the thigh of the rider, the blow fell on the
horse, and the sharp point was dragged along the side. The horse
trembled as they touched him.</p>
<p>"Sir," said one of the retainers, their headman, "if you will
pardon me, you had best string your bow and send a shaft through
his heart, for he will die in misery before morning."</p>
<p>The Bushman's spud, the one he uses for assassination or to
despatch his prey, is poisoned. It is a lingering poison, and takes
several hours to produce its effect; but no remedy is known, and
many who have escaped from the cowardly blow have crawled to the
path only to expire in torture. There was no denying that what the
retainer proposed was the only thing that could be done. The warder
had meantime brought a bucket of water, of which the poor creature
drank eagerly. Felix could not do it; he could not slay the
creature which had carried him so long, and which twice that night
had saved him, and was now to die, as it were, in his place. He
could not consent to it; he led the horse towards home, but he was
weak or weary, and could not be got beyond the Pen.</p>
<p>There the group assembled around him. Felix ordered the scratch
to be cleansed, while he ran over in his mind every possible
remedy. He gave strict orders that he should not be despatched, and
then hastened to the house. He undid with trembling hands the
thongs that bound his chest, and took out his manuscripts, hoping
against hope that among the many notes he had made there might be
something. But there was nothing, or in his excitement he
overlooked it. Remembering that Oliver was a great authority upon
horses, he went into his room and tried to wake him. Oliver, weary
with his ride, and not as yet having slept off the effects of the
feast, could not be roused.</p>
<p>Felix left him and hurried back to the Pen. Weary as he was, he
watched by the horse till the larks began to sing and the dawn was
at hand. As yet he had not shown any severe symptoms except
twitching of the limbs, and a constant thirst, which water could
not quench. But suddenly he fell, and the old retainer warned them
all to stand away, for he would bite anything that was near. His
words were instantly fulfilled; he rolled, and kicked, and bit at
everything within reach. Seeing this agony, Felix could no longer
delay. He strung his bow, but he could not fit the arrow to the
string, he missed the notch, so much did his hands shake. He
motioned to the retainers who had gathered around, and one of them
thrust his spear into the horse behind his shoulder.</p>
<p>When Felix at last returned to his chamber he could not but
reflect, as the sun rose and the beams entered, that every omen had
been against him; the adder under foot, the bandit's bolt, the
Bushman's poisoned point. He slept till noon, and, upon going out,
unrefreshed and still weary, he found that they had already buried
the horse, and ordered a mound to be raised above his grave. The
day passed slowly; he wandered about the castle and the enclosed
grounds, seeking comfort and finding none. His mind vacillated; he
recalled all that Aurora had said, persuading him not to do
anything in haste or despair. Yet he could not continue in his
present condition. Another day went by, and still undecided and
doubting, he remained at home.</p>
<p>Oliver began to jest at him; had he abandoned the expedition?
Oliver could not understand indecision; perhaps he did not see so
many sides to the question, his mind was always quickly made up.
Action was his forte, not thought. The night came, and still Felix
lingered, hesitating.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-13" id="Chap2-13"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XIII<br/> SAILING AWAY</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>But the next morning Felix arose straight from his sleep
resolved to carry out his plan. Without staying to think a moment,
without further examination of the various sides of the problem, he
started up the instant his eyes unclosed, fully determined upon his
voyage. The breath of the bright June morn as he threw open the
window-shutter filled him with hope; his heart responded to its
joyous influence. The excitement which had disturbed his mind had
had time to subside. In the still slumber of the night the strong
undercurrent of his thought resumed its course, and he awoke with
his will still firmly bent in one direction.</p>
<p>When he had dressed, he took his bow and the chest bound with
the leathern thongs, and went down. It was early, but the Baron had
already finished breakfast and gone out to his gardens; the
Baroness had not yet appeared. While he was making a hurried
breakfast (for having now made up his mind he was eager to put his
resolve into execution), Oliver came in, and seeing the chest and
the bow, understood that the hour had arrived. He immediately said
he should accompany him to Heron Bay, and assist him to start, and
went out to order their horses. There were always plenty of riding
horses at Old House (as at every fortified mansion), and there was
not the least difficulty in getting another for Felix in place of
his old favourite.</p>
<p>Oliver insisted upon taking the wooden chest, which was rather
heavy, before him on the saddle, so that Felix had nothing to carry
but his favourite bow. Oliver was surprised that Felix did not
first go to the gardens and say good-bye to the Baron, or at least
knock at the Baroness's door and bid her farewell. But he made no
remark, knowing Felix's proud and occasionally hard temper. Without
a word Felix left the old place.</p>
<p>He rode forth from the North Barrier, and did not even so much
as look behind him. Neither he nor Oliver thought of the events
that might happen before they should again meet in the old familiar
house! When the circle is once broken up it is often years before
it is reformed. Often, indeed, the members of it never meet again,
at least, not in the same manner, which, perhaps, they detested
then, and ever afterwards regretted. Without one word of farewell,
without a glance, Felix rode out into the forest.</p>
<p>There was not much conversation on the trail to Heron Bay. The
serfs were still there in charge of the canoe, and were glad enough
to see their approach, and thus to be relieved from their lonely
watch. They launched the canoe with ease, the provisions were put
on board, the chest lashed to the mast that it might not be lost,
the favourite bow was also fastened upright to the mast for safety,
and simply shaking hands with Oliver, Felix pushed out into the
creek. He paddled the canoe to the entrance and out into the Lake
till he arrived where the south-west breeze, coming over the
forest, touched and rippled the water, which by the shore was
perfectly calm.</p>
<p>Then, hoisting the sail, he put out the larger paddle which
answered as a rudder, took his seat, and, waving his hand to
Oliver, began his voyage. The wind was but light, and almost too
favourable, for he had determined to sail to the eastward; not for
any specific reason, but because there the sun rose, and that was
the quarter of light and hope. His canoe, with a long fore-and-aft
sail, and so well adapted for working into the wind, was not well
rigged for drifting before a breeze, which was what he was now
doing. He had merely to keep the canoe before the wind, steering so
as to clear the bold headland of White Horse which rose blue from
the water's edge far in front of him. Though the wind was light,
the canoe being so taper and sharp at the prow, and the sail so
large in comparison, slipped from the shore faster than he at first
imagined.</p>
<p>As he steered aslant from the little bay outwards into the great
Lake, the ripples rolling before the wind gradually enlarged into
wavelets, these again increased, and in half an hour, as the wind
now played upon them over a mile of surface, they seemed in his
canoe, with its low freeboard, to be considerable waves. He had
purposely refrained from looking back till now, lest they should
think he regretted leaving, and in his heart desired to return. But
now, feeling that he had really started, he glanced behind. He
could see no one.</p>
<p>He had forgotten that the spot where they had launched the canoe
was at the end of an inlet, and as he sailed away the creek was
shut off from view by the shore of the Lake. Unable to get to the
mouth of the bay because of the underwood and the swampy soil,
Oliver had remained gazing in the direction the canoe had taken for
a minute or two, absorbed in thought (almost the longest period he
had ever wasted in such an occupation), and then with a whistle
turned to go. The serfs, understanding that they were no longer
required, gathered their things together, and were shortly on their
way home. Oliver, holding Felix's horse by the bridle, had already
ridden that way, but he presently halted, and waited till the three
men overtook him. He then gave the horse into their charge, and
turning to the right, along a forest path which branched off there,
went to Ponze. Felix could therefore see no one when he looked
back, and they were indeed already on their way from the place.</p>
<p>He now felt that he was alone. He had parted from the shore, and
from all the old associations; he was fast passing not only out
upon the water, but out into the unknown future. But his spirit no
longer vacillated; now that he was really in the beginning of his
long contemplated enterprise his natural strength of mind returned.
The weakness and irresolution, the hesitation, left him. He became
full of his adventure, and thought of nothing else.</p>
<p>The south-west breeze, blowing as a man breathes, with alternate
rise and fall, now driving him along rapidly till the water bubbled
under the prow, now sinking, came over his right shoulder and
cooled his cheek, for it was now noon, and the June sun was
unchecked by clouds. He could no longer distinguish the shape of
the trees on shore; all the boughs were blended together in one
great wood, stretching as far as he could see. On his left there
was a chain of islands, some covered with firs, and others only
with brushwood, while others again were so low and flat that the
waves in stormy weather broke almost over them.</p>
<p>As he drew near White Horse, five white terns, or sea-swallows,
flew over; he did not welcome their appearance, as they usually
preceded rough gales. The headland, wooded to its ridge, now rose
high against the sky; ash and nut-tree and hawthorn had concealed
the ancient graven figure of the horse upon its side, but the
tradition was not forgotten, and the site retained its name. He had
been steering so as just to clear the promontory, but he now
remembered that when he had visited the summit of the hill, he had
observed that banks and shoals extended far out from the shore, and
were nearly on a level with the surface of the Lake. In a calm they
were visible, but waves concealed them, and unless the helmsman
recognised the swirl sufficiently early to change his course, they
were extremely dangerous.</p>
<p>Felix bore more out from the land, and passing fully a mile to
the north, left the shoals on his right. On his other hand there
was a sandy and barren island barely a quarter of a mile distant,
upon which he thought he saw the timbers of a wreck. It was quite
probable, for the island lay in the track of vessels coasting along
the shore. Beyond White Horse, the land fell away in a series of
indentations, curving inwards to the south; an inhospitable coast,
for the hills came down to the strand, ending abruptly in low, but
steep, chalk cliffs. Many islands of large size stood out on the
left, but Felix, not knowing the shape of the Lake beyond White
Horse, thought it best to follow the trend of the land. He thus
found, after about three hours, that he had gone far out of his
course, for the gulf-like curve of the coast now began to return to
the northward, and looking in that direction he saw a merchant
vessel under her one square sail of great size, standing across the
bay.</p>
<p>She was about five miles distant, and was evidently steering so
as to keep just inside the line of the islands. Felix, with some
difficulty, steered in a direction to interrupt her. The south-west
wind being then immediately aft, his sail did not answer well;
presently he lowered it, and paddled till he had turned the course
so that the outrigger was now on the eastern side. Then hoisting
the sail again, he sat at what had before been the prow, and
steered a point or so nearer the wind. This improved her sailing,
but as the merchant ship had at least five miles start, it would
take some hours to overtake her. Nor on reflection was he at all
anxious to come up with her, for mariners were dreaded for their
lawless conduct, being, when on a voyage, beyond all
jurisdiction.</p>
<p>On the one hand, if they saw an opportunity, they did not
hesitate to land and pillage a house, or even a hamlet. On the
other, those who dwelt anywhere near the shore considered it good
sport to light a fire and lure a vessel to her destruction, or if
she was becalmed to sally out in boats, attack, and perhaps destroy
both ship and crew. Hence the many wrecks, and losses, and the
risks of navigation, not so much from natural obstacles, since the
innumerable islands, and the creeks and inlets of the mainland
almost always offered shelter, no matter which way the storm blew,
but from the animosity of the coast people. If there was an
important harbour and a town where provisions could be obtained, or
repairs effected, the right of entrance was jealously guarded, and
no ship, however pressed by the gale, was permitted to leave, if
she had anchored, without payment of a fine. So that vessels as
much as possible avoided the harbours and towns, and the mainland
altogether, sailing along beside the islands, which were, for the
most part, uninhabited, and anchoring under their lee at night.</p>
<p>Felix, remembering the character of the mariners, resolved to
keep well away from them, but to watch their course as a guide to
himself. The mainland now ran abruptly to the north, and the canoe,
as he brought her more into the wind, sprang forward at a rapid
pace. The outrigger prevented her from making any leeway, or
heeling over, and the large spread of sail forced her swiftly
through the water. He had lost sight of the ship behind some
islands, and as he approached these, began to ask himself if he had
not better haul down his sail there, as he must now be getting near
her, when to his surprise, on coming close, he saw her great square
sail in the middle, as it seemed, of the land. The shore there was
flat, the hills which had hitherto bounded it suddenly ceasing; it
was overgrown with reeds and flags, and about two miles away the
dark sail of the merchantman drifted over these, the hull being
hidden. He at once knew that he had reached the western mouth of
the straits which divide the southern and northern mainland. When
he went to see the channel on foot through the forest, he must have
struck it a mile or two more to the east, where it wound under the
hills.</p>
<p>In another half hour he arrived at the opening of the strait; it
was about a mile wide, and either shore was quite flat, that on the
right for a short distance, the range of downs approaching within
two miles; that on the left, or north, was level as far as he could
see. He had now again to lower his sail, to get the outrigger on
his lee as he turned to the right and steered due east into the
channel. So long as the shore was level, he had no difficulty, for
the wind drew over it, but when the hills gradually came near and
almost overhung the channel, they shut off much of the breeze, and
his progress was slow. When it turned and ran narrowing every
moment to the south, the wind failed him altogether.</p>
<p>On the right shore, wooded hills rose from the water like a
wall; on the left, it was a perfect plain. He could see nothing of
the merchantman, although he knew that she could not sail here, but
must be working through with her sweeps. Her heavy hull and bluff
bow must make the rowing a slow and laborious process; therefore
she could not be far ahead, but was concealed by the winding of the
strait. He lowered the sail, as it was now useless, and began to
paddle; in a very short time he found the heat under the hills
oppressive when thus working. He had now been afloat between six
and seven hours, and must have come fully thirty miles, perhaps
rather more than twenty in a straight line, and he felt somewhat
weary and cramped from sitting so long in the canoe.</p>
<p>Though he paddled hard he did not seem to make much progress,
and at length he recognised that there was a distinct current,
which opposed his advance, flowing through the channel from east to
west. If he ceased paddling, he found he drifted slowly back; the
long aquatic weeds, too, which he passed, all extended their
floating streamers westward. We did not know of this current till
Felix Aquila observed and recorded it.</p>
<p>Tired and hungry (for, full of his voyage, he had taken no
refreshments since he started), he resolved to land, rest a little
while, and then ascend the hill, and see what he could of the
channel. He soon reached the shore, the strait having narrowed to
less than a mile in width, and ran the canoe on the ground by a
bush, to which, on getting out, he attached the painter. The relief
of stretching his limbs was so great that it seemed to endow him
with fresh strength, and without waiting to eat, he at once climbed
the hill. From the top, the remainder of the strait could be easily
distinguished. But a short distance from where he stood, it bent
again, and proceeded due east.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-14" id="Chap2-14"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XIV<br/> THE STRAITS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>The passage contracted there to little over half a mile, but
these narrows did not continue far; the shores, having approached
thus near each other, quickly receded, till presently they were at
least two miles apart. The merchant vessel had passed the narrows
with the aid of her sweeps, but she moved slowly, and, as it seemed
to him, with difficulty. She was about a mile and a half distant,
and near the eastern mouth of the strait. As Felix watched he saw
her square sail again raised, showing that she had reached a spot
where the hills ceased to shut off the wind. Entering the open Lake
she altered her course and sailed away to the north-north-east,
following the course of the northern mainland.</p>
<p>Looking now eastwards, across the Lake, he saw a vast and
beautiful expanse of water, without island or break of any kind,
reaching to the horizon. Northwards and southwards the land fell
rapidly away, skirted as usual with islets and shoals, between
which and the shore vessels usually voyaged. He had heard of this
open water, and it was his intention to sail out into and explore
it, but as the sun now began to decline towards the west, he
considered that he had better wait till morning, and so have a
whole day before him. Meantime, he would paddle through the
channel, beach the canoe on the islet that stood farthest out, and
so start clear on the morrow.</p>
<p>Turning now to look back the other way, westward, he was
surprised to see a second channel, which came almost to the foot of
the hill on which he stood, but there ended and did not connect
with the first. The entrance to it was concealed, as he now saw, by
an island, past which he must have sailed that afternoon. This
second or blind channel seemed more familiar to him than the flat
and reedy shore at the mouth of the true strait, and he now
recognised it as the one to which he had journeyed on foot through
the forest. He had not then struck the true strait at all; he had
sat down and pondered beside this deceptive inlet thinking that it
divided the mainlands. From this discovery he saw how easy it was
to be misled in such matters.</p>
<p>But it even more fully convinced him of the importance of this
uninhabited and neglected place. It seemed like a canal cut on
purpose to supply a fort from the Lake in the rear with provisions
and material, supposing access in front prevented by hostile fleets
and armies. A castle, if built near where he stood, would command
the channel; arrows, indeed, could not be shot across, but vessels
under the protection of the castle could dispute the passage,
obstructed as it could be with floating booms. An invader coming
from the north must cross here; for many years past there had been
a general feeling that some day such an attempt would be made.
Fortifications would be of incalculable value in repelling the
hostile hordes and preventing their landing.</p>
<p>Who held this strait would possess the key of the Lake, and
would be master of, or would at least hold the balance between, the
kings and republics dotted along the coasts on either hand. No
vessel could pass without his permission. It was the most patent
illustration of the extremely local horizon, the contracted mental
view of the petty kings and their statesmen, who were so concerned
about the frontiers of their provinces, and frequently interfered
and fought for a single palisaded estate or barony, yet were quite
oblivious of the opportunity of empire open here to any who could
seize it.</p>
<p>If the governor of such a castle as he imagined built upon the
strait, had also vessels of war, they could lie in this second
channel sheltered from all winds, and ready to sally forth and take
an attacking force upon the flank. While he pondered upon these
advantages he could not conceal from himself that he had once sat
down and dreamed beside this second inlet, thinking it to be the
channel. The doubt arose whether, if he was so easily misled in
such a large, tangible, and purely physical matter, he might not be
deceived also in his ideas; whether, if tested, they might not
fail; whether the world was not right and he wrong.</p>
<p>The very clearness and many-sided character of his mind often
hindered and even checked altogether the best founded of his
impressions, the more especially when he, as it were, stood still
and thought. In reverie, the subtlety of his mind entangled him; in
action, he was almost always right. Action prompted his decision.
Descending from the hill he now took some refreshment, and then
pushed out again in the canoe. So powerful was the current in the
narrowest part of the strait that it occupied him two hours in
paddling as many miles.</p>
<p>When he was free of the channel, he hoisted sail and directed
his course straight out for an island which stood almost opposite
the entrance. But as he approached, driven along at a good pace,
suddenly the canoe seemed to be seized from beneath. He knew in a
moment that he had grounded on soft mud, and sprang up to lower the
sail, but before he could do so the canoe came to a standstill on
the mud-bank, and the waves following behind, directly she stopped,
broke over the stern. Fortunately they were but small, having only
a mile or so to roll from the shore, but they flung enough water on
board in a few minutes to spoil part of his provisions, and to set
everything afloat that was loose on the bottom of the vessel.</p>
<p>He was apprehensive lest she should fill, for he now perceived
that he had forgotten to provide anything with which to bale her
out. Something is always forgotten. Having got the sail down (lest
the wind should snap the mast), he tried hard to force the canoe
back with his longer paddle, used as a movable rudder. His weight
and the resistance of the adhesive mud, on which she had driven
with much force was too great; he could not shove her off. When he
pushed, the paddle sank into the soft bottom, and gave him nothing
to press against. After struggling for some time, he paused,
beginning to fear that his voyage had already reached an end.</p>
<p>A minute's thought, more potent than the strength of ten men,
showed him that the canoe required lightening. There was no cargo
to throw overboard, nor ballast. He was the only weight. He
immediately undressed, and let himself overboard at the prow,
retaining hold of the stem. His feet sank deep into the ooze; he
felt as if, had he let go, he should have gradually gone down into
this quicksand of fine mud. By rapidly moving his feet he managed,
however, to push the canoe; she rose considerably so soon as he was
out of her, and, although he had hold of the prow, still his body
was lighter in the water. Pushing, struggling, and pressing
forward, he, by sheer impact, as it were, for his feet found no
hold in the mud, forced her back by slow degrees.</p>
<p>The blows of the waves drove her forward almost as much as he
pushed her back. Still, in time, and when his strength was fast
decreasing, she did move, and he had the satisfaction of feeling
the water deeper beneath him. But when he endeavoured to pull
himself into the canoe over the prow, directly his motive power
ceased, the waves undid the advance he had achieved, and he had to
resume his labour. This time, thinking again, before he attempted
to get into the canoe he turned her sideways to the wind, with the
outrigger to leeward. When her sharp prow and rounded keel struck
the mud-bank end on she ran easily along it. But, turned sideways,
her length found more resistance, and though the waves sent her
some way upon it, she soon came to a standstill. He clambered in as
quickly as he could (it is not easy to get into a boat out of the
water, the body feels so heavy), and, taking the paddle, without
waiting to dress, worked away from the spot.</p>
<p>Not till he had got some quarter of a mile back towards the
mainland did he pause to dry himself and resume part of his
clothing; the canoe being still partly full of water, it was no use
to put on all. Resting awhile after his severe exertions, he looked
back, and now supposed, from the colour of the water and the
general indications, that these shallows extended a long distance,
surrounding the islands at the mouth of the channel, so that no
vessel could enter or pass out in a direct line, but must steer to
the north or south until the obstacle was rounded. Afraid to
attempt to land on another island, his only course, as the sun was
now going down, was to return to the mainland, which he reached
without much trouble, as the current favoured him.</p>
<p>He drew the canoe upon the ground as far as he could. It was not
a good place to land, as the bottom was chalk, washed into holes by
the waves, and studded with angular flints. As the wind was off the
shore it did not matter; if it had blown from the east, his canoe
might very likely have been much damaged. The shore was overgrown
with hazel to within twenty yards of the water, then the ground
rose and was clothed with low ash-trees, whose boughs seemed much
stunted by tempest, showing how exposed the spot was to the
easterly gales of spring. The south-west wind was shut off by the
hills beyond. Felix was so weary that for some time he did nothing
save rest upon the ground, which was but scantily covered with
grass. An hour's rest, however, restored him to himself.</p>
<p>He gathered some dry sticks (there were plenty under the ashes),
struck his flint against the steel, ignited the tinder, and soon
had a fire. It was not necessary for warmth, the June evening was
soft and warm, but it was the hunter's instinct. Upon camping for
the night the hunter, unless Bushmen are suspected to be in the
neighbourhood, invariably lights a fire, first to cook his supper,
and secondly, and often principally, to make the spot his home. The
hearth is home, whether there be walls round it or not. Directly
there are glowing embers the place is no longer wild, it becomes
human. Felix had nothing that needed cooking. He took his cowhide
from the canoe and spread it on the ground.</p>
<p>A well-seasoned cowhide is the first possession of every hunter;
it keeps him from the damp; and with a second, supported on three
short poles stuck in the earth (two crossed at the top in front,
forming a fork, and fastened with a thong, the third resting on
these), he protects himself from the heaviest rain. This little
tent is always built with the back to windward. Felix did not erect
a second hide, the evening was so warm and beautiful he did not
need it, his cloak would be ample for covering. The fire crackled
and blazed at intervals, just far enough from him that he might
feel no inconvenience from its heat.</p>
<p>Thrushes sang in the ash wood all around him, the cuckoo called,
and the chiff-chaff never ceased for a moment. Before him stretched
the expanse of waters; he could even here see over the low islands.
In the sky a streak of cloud was tinted by the sunset, slowly
becoming paler as the light departed. He reclined in that idle,
thoughtless state which succeeds unusual effort, till the deepening
shadow and the sinking fire, and the appearance of a star, warned
him that the night was really here. Then he arose, threw on more
fuel, and fetched his cloak, his chest, and his boar spear from the
canoe. The chest he covered with a corner of the hide, wrapped
himself in the cloak, bringing it well over his face on account of
the dew; then, drawing the lower corners of the hide over his feet
and limbs, he stretched himself at full length and fell asleep,
with the spear beside him.</p>
<p>There was the possibility of Bushmen, but not much probability.
There would be far more danger near the forest path, where they
might expect a traveller and watch to waylay him, but they could
not tell beforehand where he would rest that night. If any had seen
the movements of his canoe, if any lighted upon his bivouac by
chance, his fate was certain. He knew this, but trusted to the
extreme improbability of Bushmen frequenting a place where there
was nothing to plunder. Besides, he had no choice, as he could not
reach the islands. If there was risk, it was forgotten in the
extremity of his weariness.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-15" id="Chap2-15"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XV<br/> SAILING ONWARDS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>When Felix awoke, he knew at once by the height of the sun that
the morning was far advanced. Throwing off his cloak, he stood up,
but immediately crouched down again, for a vessel was passing but a
short distance from the shore, and nearly opposite his encampment.
She had two masts, and from the flags flying, the numerous
bannerets, and the movements of so many men on board, he knew her
to be a ship of war. He was anxious that he should not be seen, and
regretted that his canoe was so much exposed, for the bush by which
he had landed hid it only from one side. As the shore was so bare
and open, if they looked that way the men on board would hardly
fail to see it, and might even distinguish him. But whether they
were too much engaged with their own affairs, or kept a careless
look-out, no notice appeared to be taken, no boat was lowered.</p>
<p>He watched the war-ship for nearly an hour before he ventured to
move. Her course was to the eastward, inside the fringe of islands.
That she was neither Irish nor Welsh he was certain from her build
and from her flags; they were too distant for the exact designs
upon them to be seen, but near enough for him to know that they
were not those displayed by the foreigners. She sailed fast, having
the wind nearly aft, which suited her two square sails.</p>
<p>The wind had risen high during the night, and now blew almost a
gale, so that he saw he must abandon for the present his project of
sailing out upon the open water. The waves there would be too high
for his canoe, which floated low in the water, and had but about
six inches freeboard. They would wash over and possibly swamp her.
Only two courses were open to him: either to sail inside the
islands under shelter of the land, or to remain where he was till
the breeze moderated. If he sailed inside the islands, following
the northward course of the merchant vessel he had observed the
previous evening, that would carry him past Eaststock, the eastern
port of Sypolis, which city, itself inland, had two harbours, with
the western of which (Weststock) it had communication by water.</p>
<p>Should he continue to sail on, he would soon reach that part of
the northern continent which was occupied by the Irish outposts. On
the other hand, to follow the war-ship, east by south, would, he
knew, bring him by the great city of Aisi, famous for its commerce,
its riches, and the warlike disposition of its king, Isembard. He
was the acknowledged head of the forces of the League; but yet,
with the inconsistency of the age, sometimes attacked other members
of it. His furious energy was always disturbing the world, and
Felix had no doubt he was now at war with some one or other, and
that the war-ship he had seen was on its way to assist him or his
enemies. One of the possibilities which had impelled him to this
voyage was that of taking service with some king or commander, and
so perhaps gradually rising himself to command.</p>
<p>Such adventures were very common, knights often setting forth
upon such expeditions when dissatisfied with their own rulers, and
they were usually much welcomed as an addition to the strength of
the camp they sought. But there was this difference: that such
knights carried with them some substantial recommendation, either
numerous retainers well armed and accustomed to battle,
considerable treasure, or at least a reputation for prowess in the
field. Felix had nothing to offer, and for nothing nothing is
given.</p>
<p>The world does not recognise intrinsic worth, or potential
genius. Genius must accomplish some solid result before it is
applauded and received. The unknown architect may say: "I have a
design in my mind for an impregnable castle." But the world cannot
see or appreciate the mere design. If by any personal sacrifice of
time, dignity, or self-respect the architect, after long years, can
persuade someone to permit him to build the castle, to put his
design into solid stone which squadrons may knock their heads
against in vain, then he is acknowledged. There is then a tangible
result.</p>
<p>Felix was in the position of the architect. He believed he had
ideas, but he had nothing substantial, no result, to point to. He
had therefore but little hope of success, and his natural hauteur
and pride revolted against making application for enrolment which
must be accompanied with much personal humiliation, since at best
he could but begin in the common ranks. The very idea of asking was
repugnant to him. The thought of Aurora, however, drew him on.</p>
<p>The pride was false, he said to himself, and arose from too high
an estimate of his abilities; or it was the consequence of living
so long entirely secluded from the world. He acknowledged to
himself that he had not been beaten down to his level. Full of
devotion to Aurora, he resolved to humble himself, to seek the
humblest service in King Isembard's camp, to bow his spirit to the
orders of men above him in rank but below him in birth and ability,
to submit to the numberless indignities of a common soldier's
life.</p>
<p>He proceeded to launch the canoe, and had already placed the
chest on board when it occurred to him that the difficulties he had
encountered the previous evening, when his canoe was so nearly
lost, arose from his ignorance of the channels. It would be
advisable to ascend the hill, and carefully survey the coast as far
as possible before setting forth. He did so. The war-ship was still
visible from the summit, but while he looked she was hidden by the
intervening islands. The white foam and angry appearance of the
distant open water direct to the eastward, showed how wise he had
been not to attempt its exploration. Under the land the wind was
steady; yonder, where the gale struck the surface with all its
force, the waves were large and powerful.</p>
<p>From this spot he could see nearly the whole length of the
strait, and, gazing up it in the direction he had come, he saw some
boats crossing in the distance. As they moved so slowly, and
appeared so broad, he conjectured that they were flat-bottomed
punts, and, straining his eyes, he fancied he detected horses on
board. He watched four cross, and presently the first punt
returned, as if for another freight. He now noticed that there was
a land route by which travellers or waggons came down from the
northward, and crossed the strait by a ferry. It appeared that the
ferry was not in the narrowest part of the strait, but nearer its
western mouth, where the shores were flat, and covered with reeds
and flags. He wondered that he had not seen anything of the
landing-places, or of the ferry-boats, or some sign of this traffic
when he passed, but concluded that the track was hidden among the
dense growth of reed and flag, and that the punts, not being in use
that day, had been drawn up, and perhaps covered with green boughs
to shelter them from the heat of the summer sun.</p>
<p>The fact of this route existing, however, gave additional
importance to the establishment of a fort on the shore of the
strait, as he had so long contemplated. By now, the first punt had
obtained another load, and was re-crossing the channel. It was
evident that a caravan of travellers or merchants had arrived, such
persons usually travelling in large bodies for safety, so that the
routes were often deserted for weeks together, and then suddenly
covered with people. Routes, indeed, they were, and not roads; mere
tracks worn through the forest and over the hills, often impassable
from floods.</p>
<p>Still further satisfied that his original idea of a castle here
was founded on a correct estimate of the value of the spot, Felix
resolved to keep the conception to himself, and not again to hazard
it to others, who might despise him, but adopt his design. With one
long last glance at the narrow streak of water which formed the
central part, as it were, of his many plans, he descended the hill,
and pushed off in the canoe.</p>
<p>His course this time gave him much less trouble than the day
before, when he had frequently to change his tack. The steady,
strong breeze came off the land, to which he was too close for any
waves to arise, and hour after hour passed without any necessity to
shift the sail, further than to ease or tighten the sheets as the
course of the land varied. By degrees the wind came more and more
across his course, at right angles to it, and then began to fall
aft as he described an arc, and the land projected northwards.</p>
<p>He saw several small villages on the shore, and passed one
narrow bay, which seemed, indeed, to penetrate into the land deeper
than he could actually see. Suddenly, after four or five hours,
sailing, he saw the tower of a church over the wooded hills. This
he knew must indicate the position of Aisi. The question now came,
whether he should sail into the harbour, when he would, of course,
at once be seen, and have to undergo the examination of the
officers; or should he land, and go on foot to the city? A minute's
reflection assured him the latter was the better plan, for his
canoe was of so unusual a construction, that it would be more than
carefully examined, and not unlikely his little treasures would be
discovered and appropriated. Without hesitation, therefore, and
congratulating himself that there were no vessels in sight, he ran
the canoe on shore among the flags and reeds which bordered it.</p>
<p>He drew her up as far as his strength permitted, and not only
took down the sail, but unshipped the mast; then cutting a quantity
of dead reeds, he scattered them over her, so that, unless a boat
passed very close to the land, she would not be seen. While he had
a meal he considered how he had better proceed. The only arms with
which he excelled were the bow and arrow; clearly, therefore, if he
wished an engagement, he should take these with him, and exhibit
his skill. But well he knew the utter absence of law and justice
except for the powerful. His bow, which he so greatly valued, and
which was so well seasoned, and could be relied upon, might be
taken from him.</p>
<p>His arrows, so carefully prepared from chosen wood, and pointed
with steel, might be seized. Both bow and arrows were far superior
to those used by the hunters and soldiery, and he dreaded losing
them. There was his crossbow, but it was weak, and intended for
killing only small game, as birds, and at short range. He could
make no display with that. Sword he had none for defence; there
remained only his boar spear, and with this he resolved to be
content, trusting to obtain the loan of a bow when the time came to
display his skill, and that fortune would enable him to triumph
with an inferior weapon.</p>
<p>After resting awhile and stretching his limbs, cramped in the
canoe, he set out (carrying his boar-spear only) along the shore,
for the thick growth of the firs would not let him penetrate in the
direction he had seen the tower. He had to force his way through
the reeds and flags and brushwood, which flourished between the
firs and the water's edge. It was hard work walking, or rather
pushing through these obstacles, and he rejoiced when he emerged
upon the slope of a down where there was an open sward, and but a
few scattered groups of firs. The fact of it being open, and the
shortness of the sward, showed at once that it was used for grazing
purposes for cattle and sheep. Here he could walk freely, and soon
reached the top. Thence the city was visible almost underneath
him.</p>
<p>It stood at the base of a low narrow promontory, which ran a
long way into the Lake. The narrow bank, near where it joined the
mainland, was penetrated by a channel or creek, about a hundred
yards wide, or less, which channel appeared to enter the land and
was lost from sight of among the trees. Beyond this channel a river
ran into the lake, and in the <b>Y</b>, between the creek and the
river, the city had been built.</p>
<p>It was surrounded with a brick wall, and there were two large
round brick towers on the land side, which indicated the position
of the castle and palace. The space enclosed by the walls was not
more than half a mile square, and the houses did not occupy nearly
all of it. There were open places, gardens, and even small paddocks
among them. None of the houses were more than two storeys high, but
what at once struck a stranger was the fact that they were all
roofed with red tiles, most of the houses of that day being
thatched or covered with shingles of wood. As Felix afterwards
learnt, this had been effected during the reign of the present
king, whose object was to protect his city from being set on fire
by burning arrows. The encircling wall had become a dull red hue
from the long exposure to the weather, but the roofs were a
brighter red. There was no ensign flying on either of the towers,
from which he concluded that the king at that moment was
absent.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-16" id="Chap2-16"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XVI<br/> THE CITY</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Slowly descending towards the city, Felix looked in vain for any
means of crossing the channel or creek, which extended upon the
side of it, and in which he counted twenty-two merchant vessels at
anchor, or moored to the bank, besides a number of smaller craft
and boats. The ship of war, which had arrived before him, was
beached close up by a gate of the city, which opened on the creek
or port, and her crew were busily engaged discharging her stores.
As he walked beside the creek trying to call the attention of some
boatman to take him across, he was impressed by the silence, for
though the city wall was not much more than a stone's throw
distant, there was none of the usual hum which arises from the
movements of people. On looking closer he noticed, too, that there
were few persons on the merchant vessels, and not one gang at work
loading or unloading. Except the warder stalking to and fro on the
wall, and the crew of the war-ship, there was no one visible. As
the warder paced to and fro the blade of his partisan gleamed in
the sunshine. He must have seen Felix, but with military
indifference did not pay the slightest heed to the latter's efforts
to attract his attention.</p>
<p>He now passed the war-ship, and shouted to the men at work, who
were, he could see, carrying sheaves of arrows and bundles of
javelins from the vessel and placing them on carts; but they did
not trouble to reply. His common dress and ordinary appearance did
not inspire them with any hope of payment from him if they obliged
him with a boat. The utter indifference with which his approach was
seen showed him the contempt in which he was held.</p>
<p>Looking round to see if there were no bridge or ferry, he caught
sight of the grey church tower which he had observed from afar
while sailing. It was quite a mile from the city, and isolated
outside the walls. It stood on the slope of the hill, over whose
summit the tower was visible. He wandered up towards it, as there
were usually people in or about the churches, which were always
open day and night. If no one else, the porter in the lodge at the
church door would be there, for he or his representative never left
it, being always on the watch lest some thief should attempt to
enter the treasury, or steal the sacred vessels.</p>
<p>But as he ascended the hill he met a shepherd, whose dogs
prepared to fly at him, recognising a stranger. For a moment the
man seemed inclined to let them wreak their will, if they could,
for he also felt inclined to challenge a stranger, but, seeing
Felix lower his spear, it probably occurred to him that some of his
dogs would be killed. He therefore ordered them down, and stayed to
listen. Felix learnt that there was no bridge across the creek, and
only one over the river; but there was a ferry for anybody who was
known. No strangers were allowed to cross the ferry; they must
enter by the main road over the bridge.</p>
<p>"But how am I to get into the place then?" said Felix. The
shepherd shook his head, and said he could not tell him, and walked
away about his business.</p>
<p>Discouraged at these trifling vexations, which seemed to cross
his path at every step, Felix found his way to the ferry, but, as
the shepherd had said, the boatman refused to carry him, being a
stranger. No persuasion could move him; nor the offer of a small
silver coin, worth about ten times his fare.</p>
<p>"I must then swim across," said Felix, preparing to take off his
clothes.</p>
<p>"Swim, if you like," said the boatman, with a grim smile; "but
you will never land."</p>
<p>"Why not?"</p>
<p>"Because the warder will let drive at you with an arrow."</p>
<p>Felix looked, and saw that he was opposite the extreme angle of
the city wall, a point usually guarded with care. There was a
warder stalking to and fro; he carried a partisan, but, of course,
might have his bow within reach, or could probably call to the
soldiers of the guard.</p>
<p>"This <i>is</i> annoying," said Felix, ready to give up his
enterprise. "How ever can I get into the city?"</p>
<p>The old boatman grinned, but said nothing, and returned to a net
which he was mending. He made no answer to the further questions
Felix put to him. Felix then shouted to the warder; the soldier
looked once, but paid no more heed. Felix walked a little way and
sat down on the grass. He was deeply discouraged. These repulses,
trifles in themselves, assumed an importance, because his mind had
long been strung up to a high pitch of tension. A stolid man would
have thought nothing of them. After a while he arose, again asking
himself how should he become a leader, who had not the perseverance
to enter a city in peaceful guise?</p>
<p>Not knowing what else to do, he followed the creek round the
foot of the hill, and so onwards for a mile or more. This bank was
steep, on account of the down; the other cultivated, the corn being
already high. The cuckoo sang (she loves the near neighbourhood of
man) and flew over the channel towards a little copse. Almost
suddenly the creek wound round under a low chalk cliff, and in a
moment Felix found himself confronted by another city. This had no
wall; it was merely defended by a ditch and earthwork, without
tower or bastion.</p>
<p>The houses were placed thickly together; there were, he thought,
six or seven times as many as he had previously seen, and they were
thatched or shingled, like those in his own country. It stood in
the midst of the fields, and the corn came up to the fosse; there
were many people at work, but, as he noticed, most of them were old
men, bowed and feeble. A little way farther he saw a second
boathouse; he hastened thither, and the ferrywoman, for the boat
was poled across by a stout dame, made not the least difficulty
about ferrying him over. So delighted was Felix at this unexpected
fortune, that he gave her the small silver coin, at sight of which
he instantly rose high in her estimation.</p>
<p>She explained to him, in answer to his inquiries, that this was
also called Aisi; this was the city of the common folk. Those who
were rich or powerful had houses in the walled city, the precinct
of the Court. Many of the houses there, too, were the inns of great
families who dwelt in the country in their castles, but when they
came to the Court required a house. Their shields, or coats of
arms, were painted over the doors. The walled city was guarded with
such care, because so many attempts had been made to surprise it,
and to assassinate the king, whose fiery disposition and constant
wars had raised him up so many enemies. As much care was taken to
prevent a single stranger entering as if he were the vanguard of a
hostile army, and if he now went back (as he could do) to the
bridge over the river, he would be stopped and questioned, and
possibly confined in prison till the king returned.</p>
<p>"Where is the king?" asked Felix; "I came to try and take
service with him."</p>
<p>"Then you will be welcome," said the woman. "He is in the field,
and has just sat down before Iwis."</p>
<p>"That was why the walled city seemed so empty, then." said
Felix.</p>
<p>"Yes; all the people are with him; there will be a great battle
this time."</p>
<p>"How far is it to Iwis?" said Felix.</p>
<p>"Twenty-seven miles," replied the dame; "and if you take my
advice, you had better walk twenty-seven miles there, than two
miles back to the bridge over the river."</p>
<p>Someone now called from the opposite bank, and she started with
the boat to fetch another passenger.</p>
<p>"Thank you, very much," said Felix, as he wished her good day;
"but why did not the man at the other ferry tell me I could cross
here?"</p>
<p>The woman laughed outright. "Do you suppose he was going to put
a penny in my way when he could not get it himself?"</p>
<p>So mean and petty is the world! Felix entered the second city
and walked some distance through it, when he recollected that he
had not eaten for some time. He looked in vain for an inn, but upon
speaking to a man who was leaning on his crutch at a doorway, he
was at once asked to enter, and all that the house afforded was put
before him. The man with the crutch sat down opposite, and remarked
that most of the folk were gone to the camp, but he could not
because his foot had been injured. He then went on to tell how it
had happened, with the usual garrulity of the wounded. He was
assisting to place the beam of a battering-ram upon a truck (it
took ten horses to draw it) when a lever snapped, and the beam
fell. Had the beam itself touched him he would have been killed on
the spot; as it was, only a part of the broken lever or pole hit
him. Thrown with such force, the weight of the ram driving it, the
fragment of the pole grazed his leg, and either broke one of the
small bones that form the arch of the instep, or so bruised it that
it was worse than broken. All the bone-setters and surgeons had
gone to the camp, and he was left without attendance other than the
women, who fomented the foot daily, but he had little hope of
present recovery, knowing that such things were often months
about.</p>
<p>He thought it lucky that it was no worse, for very few, he had
noticed, ever recovered from serious wounds of spear or arrow. The
wounded generally died; only the fortunate escaped. Thus he ran on,
talking as much for his own amusement as that of his guest. He
fretted because he could not join the camp and help work the
artillery; he supposed the ram would be in position by now and
shaking the wall with its blow. He wondered if Baron Ingulph would
miss his face.</p>
<p>"Who's he?" asked Felix.</p>
<p>"He is captain of the artillery," replied his host.</p>
<p>"Are you his retainer?"</p>
<p>"No; I am a servant."</p>
<p>Felix started slightly, and did but just check himself from
rising from the table. A "servant" was a slave; it was the
euphemism used instead of the hateful word, which not even the most
degraded can endure to bear. The class of the nobles to which he
belonged deemed it a disgrace to sit down with a slave, to eat with
him, even to accidently touch him. With the retainers, or free men,
they were on familiar terms, though despotic to the last degree;
the slave was less than the dog. Then, stealing a glance at the
man's face, Felix saw that he had no moustache; he had not noticed
this before. No slaves were allowed to wear the moustache.</p>
<p>This man having been at home ill some days had neglected to
shave, and there was some mark upon his upper lip. As he caught his
guest's glance, the slave hung his head, and asked his guest in a
low and humble voice not to mention this fault. With his face
slightly flushed, Felix finished his meal; he was confused to the
last degree. His long training and the tone of the society in which
he had moved (though so despised a member of it) prejudiced him
strongly against the man whose hospitality was so welcome. On the
other hand, the ideas which had for so long worked in his mind in
his solitary intercommunings in the forest were entirely opposed to
servitude. In abstract principle he had long since condemned it,
and desired to abolish it. But here was the fact.</p>
<p>He had eaten at a slave's table, and sat with him face to face.
Theory and practice are often strangely at variance. He felt it an
important moment; he felt that he was himself, as it were, on the
balance; should he adhere to the ancient prejudice, the ancient
exclusiveness of his class, or should he boldly follow the dictate
of his mind? He chose the latter, and extended his hand to the
servant as he rose to say good-bye. The act was significant; it
recognised man as distinct from caste. The servant did not know the
conflict that had taken place; but to be shaken hands with at all,
even by a retainer as he supposed Felix to be, was indeed a
surprise. He could not understand it; it was the first time his
hand had been taken by any one of superior position since he had
been born. He was dumb with amazement, and could scarcely point out
the road when asked; nor did he take the small coin Felix offered,
one of the few he possessed. Felix therefore left it on the table
and again started.</p>
<p>Passing through the town, Felix followed the track which led in
the direction indicated. In about half a mile it led him to a wider
track, which he immediately recognised as the main way and road to
the camp by the ruts and dust, for the sward had been trampled down
for fifty yards wide, and even the corn was cut up by wheels and
horses' hoofs. The army had passed, and he had but to follow its
unmistakable trail.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-17" id="Chap2-17"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XVII<br/> THE CAMP</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix walked steadily on for nearly three hours, when the rough
track, the dust, and heat began to tell upon him, and he sat down
beside the way. The sun was now declining, and the long June day
tending to its end. A horseman passed, coming from the camp, and as
he wore only a sword, and had a leathern bag slung from his
shoulder, he appeared to be a courtier. The dust raised by the
hoofs, as it rose and floated above the brushwood, rendered his
course visible. Some time afterwards, while he still rested, being
very weary with walking through the heat of the afternoon, he heard
the sound of wheels, and two carts drawn by horses came along the
track from the city.</p>
<p>The carts were laden with bundles of arrows, perhaps the same he
had seen unloading that morning from the war-ship, and were
accompanied only by carters. As they approached he rose, feeling
that it was time to continue his journey. His tired feet were now
stiff, and he limped as he stepped out into the road. The men
spoke, and he walked as well as he could beside them, using his
boar-spear as a staff. There were two carters with each cart; and
presently, noting how he lagged, and could scarce keep pace with
them, one of them took a wooden bottle from the load on his cart,
and offered him a draught of ale.</p>
<p>Thus somewhat refreshed, Felix began to talk, and learnt that
the arrows were from the vessel in whose track he had sailed; that
it had been sent loaded with stores for the king's use, by his
friend the Prince of Quinton; that very great efforts had been made
to get together a large army in this campaign; first, because the
city besieged was so near home, and failure might be disastrous,
and, secondly, because it was one of three which were all
republics, and the other two would be certain to send it
assistance. These cities stood in a plain, but a few miles apart,
and in a straight line on the banks of the river. The king had just
sat down before the first, vowing that he would knock them down,
one after the other, like a row of ninepins.</p>
<p>The carters asked him, in return, whose retainer he was, and he
said that he was on his way to take service, and was under no
banner yet.</p>
<p>"Then," said the man who had given him a drink, "if you are free
like that, you had better join the king's levy, and be careful to
avoid the barons' war. For if you join either of the barons' war,
they will know you to be a stranger, and very likely, if they see
that you are quick and active, they will not let you free again,
and if you attempt to escape after the campaign, you will find
yourself mightily mistaken. The baron's captain would only have to
say you had always been his man; and, as for your word, it would be
no more than a dog's bark. Besides which, if you rebelled, it would
be only to shave off that moustache of yours, and declare you a
slave, and as you have no friends in camp, a slave you would
be."</p>
<p>"That would be very unjust," said Felix. "Surely the king would
not allow it?"</p>
<p>"How is he to know?" said another of the carters. "My brother's
boy was served just like that. He was born free, the same as all
our family, but he was fond of roving, and when he reached Quinton,
he was seen by Baron Robert, who was in want of men, and being a
likely young fellow, they shaved his lip, and forced him to labour
under the thong. When his spirit was cowed, and he seemed
reconciled, they let him grow his moustache again, and there he is
now, a retainer, and well treated. But still, it was against his
will. Jack is right; you had better join the king's levy."</p>
<p>The king's levy is composed of his own retainers from his
estates, of townsmen, who are not retainers of the barons, of any
knights and volunteers who like to offer their services; and a king
always desires as large a levy as possible, because it enables him
to overawe his barons. These, when their "war", or forces, are
collected together in camp, are often troublesome, and inclined to
usurp authority. A volunteer is, therefore, always welcome in the
king's levy.</p>
<p>Felix thanked them for the information they had given him, and
said he should certainly follow their advice. He could now hardly
keep up with the carts, having walked for so many hours, and
undergone so much previous exertion. Finding this to be the case,
he wished them good-night, and looked round for some cover. It was
now dusk, and he knew he could go no farther. When they understood
his intention, they consulted among themselves, and finally made
him get up into one of the carts, and sit down on the bundles of
arrows, which filled it like faggots. Thus he was jolted along, the
rude wheels fitting but badly on the axle, and often sinking deep
into a rut.</p>
<p>They were now in thick forest, and the track was much narrower,
so that it had become worn into a hollow, as if it were the dry bed
of a torrent. The horses and the carters were weary, yet they were
obliged to plod on, as the arms had to be delivered before the
morrow. They spoke little, except to urge the animals. Felix soon
dropped into a reclining posture (uneasy as it was, it was a
relief), and looking up, saw the white summer stars above. After a
time he lost consciousness, and slept soundly, quite worn out,
despite the jolting and creaking of the wheels.</p>
<p>The sound of a trumpet woke him with a start. His heavy and
dreamless sleep for a moment had taken away his memory, and he did
not know where he was. As he sat up two sacks fell from him; the
carters had thrown them over him as a protection against the
night's dew. The summer morning was already as bright as noonday,
and the camp about him was astir. In half a minute he came to
himself, and getting out of the cart looked round. All his old
interest had returned, the spirit of war entered into him, the
trumpet sounded again, and the morning breeze extended the
many-coloured banners.</p>
<p>The spot where he stood was in the rear of the main camp, and
but a short distance from the unbroken forest. Upon either hand
there was an intermingled mass of stores, carts, and waggons
crowded together, sacks and huge heaps of forage, on and about
which scores of slaves, drivers and others, were sleeping in every
possible attitude, many of them evidently still under the influence
of the ale they had drunk the night before. What struck him at once
was the absence of any guard here in the rear. The enemy might
steal out from the forest behind and help himself to what he chose,
or murder the sleeping men, or, passing through the stores, fall on
the camp itself. To Felix this neglect appeared inexplicable; it
indicated a mental state which he could not comprehend, a state
only to be described by negatives. There was no completeness, no
system, no organization; it was a kind of haphazardness, altogether
opposite to his own clear and well-ordered ideas.</p>
<p>The ground sloped gently downwards from the edge of the forest,
and the place where he was had probably been ploughed, but was now
trodden flat and hard. Next in front of the stores he observed a
long, low hut built of poles, and roofed with fir branches; the
walls were formed of ferns, straw, bundles of hay, anything that
had come to hand. On a standard beside it, a pale blue banner, with
the device of a double hammer worked in gold upon it, fluttered in
the wind. Twenty or thirty, perhaps more, spears leant against one
end of this rude shed, their bright points projecting yards above
the roof. To the right of the booth as many horses were picketed,
and not far from them some soldiers were cooking at an open fire of
logs. As Felix came slowly towards the booth, winding in and out
among the carts and heaps of sacks, he saw that similar erections
extended down the slope for a long distance.</p>
<p>There were hundreds of them, some large, some small, not placed
in any order, but pitched where chance or fancy led, the
first-comers taking the sites that pleased them, and the rest
crowding round. Beside each hut stood the banner of the owner, and
Felix knew from this that they were occupied by the barons,
knights, and captains of the army. The retainers of each baron
bivouacked as they might in the open air; some of them had hunter's
hides, and others used bundles of straw to sleep on. Their fire was
as close to their lord's hut as convenient, and thus there were
always plenty within call.</p>
<p>The servants, or slaves, also slept in the open air, but in the
rear of their owner's booth, and apart from the free retainers.
Felix noticed, that although the huts were pitched anyhow and
anywhere, those on the lowest ground seemed built along a line,
and, looking closer, he found that a small stream ran there. He
learnt afterwards that there was usually an emulation among the
commanders to set up their standards as near the water as possible,
on account of convenience, those in the rear having often to lead
their horses a long distance to water. Beyond the stream the ground
rose again as gradually as it had declined. It was open and
cultivated up to the walls of the besieged city, which was not
three-quarters of a mile distant. Felix could not for the moment
distinguish the king's head-quarters. The confused manner in which
the booths were built prevented him from seeing far, though from
the higher ground it was easy to look over their low roofs.</p>
<p>He now wandered into the centre of the camp, and saw with
astonishment groups of retainers everywhere eating, drinking,
talking, and even playing cards or dice, but not a single officer
of any rank. At last, stopping by the embers of a fire, he asked
timidly if he might have breakfast. The soldiers laughed and
pointed to a cart behind them, telling him to help himself. The
cart was turned with the tail towards the fire, and laden with
bread and sides of bacon, slices of which the retainers had been
toasting at the embers.</p>
<p>He did as he was bid, and the next minute a soldier, not quite
steady on his legs even at that hour, offered him the can, "for,"
said he, "you had best drink whilst you may, youngster. There is
always plenty of drink and good living at the beginning of a war,
and very often not a drop or a bite to be got in the middle of it."
Listening to their talk as he ate his breakfast, Felix found the
reason there were no officers about was because most of them had
drunk too freely the night before. The king himself, they said, was
put to bed as tight as a drum, and it took no small quantity to
fill so huge a vessel, for he was a remarkably big man.</p>
<p>After the fatigue of the recent march, they had, in fact,
refreshed themselves, and washed down the dust of the track. They
thought that this siege was likely to be a very tough business, and
congratulated themselves that it was not thirty miles to Aisi, so
that so long as they stayed there they might, perhaps, get supplies
of provisions with tolerable regularity. "But if you're over the
water, my lad," said the old fellow with the can, picking his teeth
with a twig, "and have got to get your victuals by ship; by George,
you may have to eat grass, or gnaw boughs like a horse."</p>
<p>None of these men wore any arms, except the inevitable knife;
their arms were piled against the adjacent booth, bows and quivers,
spears, swords, bills and darts, thrown together just as they had
cast them aside, and more or less rusty from the dew. Felix thought
that had the enemy come suddenly down in force they might have made
a clean sweep of the camp, for there were no defences, neither
breastwork, nor fosse, nor any set guard. But he forgot that the
enemy were quite as ill-organized as the besiegers; probably they
were in still greater confusion, for King Isembard was considered
one of the greatest military commanders of his age, if not the very
greatest.</p>
<p>The only sign of discipline he saw was the careful grooming of
some horses, which he rightly guessed to be those ridden by the
knights, and the equally careful polishing of pieces of armour
before the doors of the huts. He wished now to inquire his way to
the king's levy, but as the question rose to his lips he checked
himself, remembering the caution the friendly carters had given
him. He therefore determined to walk about the camp till he found
some evidence that he was in the immediate neighbourhood of the
king.</p>
<p>He rose, stood about a little while to allay any possible
suspicion (quite needless precautions, for the soldiers were far
too agreeably engaged to take the least notice of him), and then
sauntered off with as careless an air as he could assume. Looking
about him, first at a forge where the blacksmith was shoeing a
horse, then at a grindstone, where a knight's sword was being
sharpened, he was nearly knocked down by a horse, urged at some
speed through the crowds. By a rope from the collar, three dead
bodies were drawn along the ground, dusty and disfigured by bumping
against stone and clod. They were those of slaves, hanged the
preceding day, perhaps for pilfering, perhaps for a mere whim,
since every baron had power of the gallows.</p>
<p>They were dragged through the camp, and out a few hundred yards
beyond, and there left to the crows. This horrible sight, to which
the rest were so accustomed and so indifferent that they did not
even turn to look at it, deeply shocked him; the drawn and
distorted features, the tongues protruding and literally licking
the dust, haunted him for long after. Though his father, as a
baron, possessed the same power, it had never been exercised during
his tenure of the estate, so that Felix had not been hardened to
the sight of executions, common enough elsewhere. Upon the Old
House estate a species of negative humanity reigned; if the slaves
were not emancipated, they were not hanged or cruelly beaten for
trifles.</p>
<p>Hastening from the spot, Felix came across the artillery, which
consisted of battering rams and immense crossbows; the bows were
made from entire trees, or, more properly, poles. He inspected
these clumsy contrivances with interest, and entered into a
conversation with some men who were fitting up the framework on
which a battering ram was to swing. Being extremely conceited with
themselves and the knowledge they had acquired from experience only
(as the repeated blows of the block drive home the pile), they
scarcely answered him. But, presently, as he lent a hand to assist,
and bore with their churlishness without reply, they softened, and,
as usual, asked him to drink, for here, and throughout the camp,
the ale was plentiful, too plentiful for much progress.</p>
<p>Felix took the opportunity and suggested a new form of trigger
for the unwieldy crossbows. He saw that as at present discharged it
must require some strength, perhaps the united effort of several
men, to pull away the bolt or catch. Such an effort must disconcert
the aim; these crossbows were worked upon a carriage, and it was
difficult to keep the carriage steady even when stakes were
inserted by the low wheels. It occurred to him at once that the
catch could be depressed by a lever, so that one man could
discharge the bow by a mere pressure of the hand, and without
interfering with the aim. The men soon understood him, and
acknowledged that it would be a great improvement. One, who was the
leader of the gang, thought it so valuable an idea that he went off
at once to communicate with the lieutenant, who would in his turn
carry the matter to Baron Ingulph, Master of the Artillery.</p>
<p>The others congratulated him, and asked to share in the reward
that would be given to him for this invention. To whose "war" did
he belong? Felix answered, after a little hesitation, to the king's
levy. At this they whispered among themselves, and Felix, again
remembering the carters' caution, said that he must attend the
muster (this was a pure guess), but that he would return directly
afterwards. Never for a moment suspecting that he would avoid the
reward they looked upon as certain, they made no opposition, and he
hurried away. Pushing through the groups, and not in the least
knowing where he was going, Felix stumbled at last upon the king's
quarters.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-18" id="Chap2-18"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XVIII<br/> THE KING'S LEVY</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>The king's booth stood apart from the rest; it was not much
larger, but properly thatched with straw, and the wide doorway hung
with purple curtains. Two standards stood beside it; one much
higher than the other. The tallest bore the ensign of the kingdom;
the lesser, the king's own private banner as a knight. A breastwork
encircled the booth, enclosing a space about seventy yards in
diameter, with a fosse, and stakes so planted as to repel
assailants. There was but one gateway, opposite the general camp,
and this was guarded by soldiers fully armed. A knight on horseback
in armour, except his helmet, rode slowly up and down before the
gate; he was the officer of the guard. His retainers, some thirty
or forty men, were drawn up close by.</p>
<p>A distance of fifty yards intervened between this entrenchment
and the camp, and was kept clear. Within the entrenchment Felix
could see a number of gentlemen, and several horses caparisoned,
but from the absence of noise and the fact that every one appeared
to walk daintily and on tiptoe, he concluded that the king was
still sleeping. The stream ran beside the entrenchment, and between
it and the city; the king's quarters were at that corner of the
camp highest up the brook, so that the water might not be fouled
before it reached him.</p>
<p>The king's levy, however, did not seem to be hereabouts, for the
booths nearest the head-quarters were evidently occupied by great
barons, as Felix easily knew from their banners. There was here
some little appearance of formality; the soldiery were not so
noisy, and there were several officers moving among them. He
afterwards discovered that the greater barons claimed the right to
camp nearest the king, and that the king's levy was just behind
their booths. But unable to discover the place, and afraid of
losing his liberty if he delayed longer, Felix, after hesitating
some time, determined to apply direct to the guard at the gate of
the circular entrenchment.</p>
<p>As he crossed the open ground towards it, he noticed that the
king's quarters were the closest to the enemy. Across the little
stream were some corn-fields, and beyond these the walls of the
city, scarcely half a mile distant. There was no outpost, the
stream was but a brook, and could be crossed with ease. He
marvelled at the lack of precaution; but he had yet to learn that
the enemy, and all the armies of the age, were equally ignorant and
equally careless.</p>
<p>With as humble a demeanour as he could assume, Felix doffed his
cap and began to speak to the guard at the gateway of the
entrenchment. The nearest man-at-arms immediately raised his spear
and struck him with the butt. The unexpected blow fell on his left
shoulder, and with such force as to render it powerless. Before he
could utter a remonstrance, a second had seized his boar-spear,
snapped the handle across his knee, and hurled the fragments from
him. Others then took him by the shoulders and thrust him back
across the open space to the camp, where they kicked him and left
him, bruised, and almost stupefied with indignation. His offence
was approaching the king's ground with arms in his hands.</p>
<p>Later in the afternoon he found himself sitting on the bank of
the stream far below the camp. He had wandered thither without
knowing where he was going or what he was doing. His spirit for the
time had been crushed, not so much by the physical brutality as by
the repulse to his aspirations. Full of high hopes, and conscious
of great ideas, he had been beaten like a felon hound.</p>
<p>From this spot beside the brook the distant camp appeared very
beautiful. The fluttering banners, the green roofs of the booths
(of ferns and reeds and boughs), the movement and life, for bodies
of troops were now marching to and fro, and knights in gay attire
riding on horseback, made a pleasant scene on the sloping ground
with the forest at the back. Over the stream the sunshine lit up
the walls of the threatened city, where, too, many flags were
waving. Felix came somewhat to himself as he gazed, and presently
acknowledged that he had only had himself to blame. He had
evidently transgressed a rule, and his ignorance of the rule was no
excuse, since those who had any right to be in the camp at all were
supposed to understand it.</p>
<p>He got up, and returning slowly towards the camp, passed on his
way the drinking-place, where a groom was watering some horses. The
man called to him to help hold a spirited charger, and Felix
mechanically did as he was asked. The fellow's mates had left him
to do their work, and there were too many horses for him to manage.
Felix led the charger for him back to the camp, and in return was
asked to drink. He preferred food, and a plentiful supply was put
before him. The groom, gossiping as he attended to his duties, said
that he always welcomed the beginning of a war, for they were often
half starved, and had to gnaw the bones, like the dogs, in peace.
But when war was declared, vast quantities of provisions were got
together, and everybody gorged at their will. The very dogs
battened; he pointed to half a dozen who were tearing a raw
shoulder of mutton to pieces. Before the campaign was over, those
very dogs might starve. To what "war" did Felix belong? He replied
to the king's levy.</p>
<br/>
<p>The groom said that this was the king's levy where they were;
but under whose command was he? This puzzled Felix, who did not
know what to say, and ended by telling the truth, and begging the
fellow to advise him, as he feared to lose his liberty. The man
said he had better stay where he was, and serve with him under
Master Lacy, who was mean enough in the city, but liked to appear
liberal when thus consorting with knights and gentlemen.</p>
<p>Master Lacy was a merchant of Aisi, an owner of vessels. Like
most of his fellows, when war came so close home, he was almost
obliged to join the king's levy. Had he not done so it would have
been recorded against him as a lack of loyalty. His privileges
would have been taken from him, possibly the wealth he had
accumulated seized, and himself reduced to slavery. Lacy,
therefore, put on armour, and accompanied the king to the camp.
Thus Felix, after all his aspirations, found himself serving as the
knave of a mere citizen.</p>
<p>He had to take the horses down to water, to scour arms, to fetch
wood from the forest for the fire. He was at the beck and call of
all the other men, who never scrupled to use his services, and,
observing that he never refused, put upon him all the more. On the
other hand, when there was nothing doing, they were very kind and
even thoughtful. They shared the best with him, brought wine
occasionally (wine was scarce, though ale plentiful) as a delicacy,
and one, who had dexterously taken a purse, presented him with half
a dozen copper coins as his share of the plunder. Felix, grown
wiser by experience, did not dare refuse the stolen money, it would
have been considered as the greatest insult; he watched his
opportunity and threw it away.</p>
<p>The men, of course, quickly discovered his superior education,
but that did not in the least surprise them, it being extremely
common for unfortunate people to descend by degrees to menial
offices, if once they left the estate and homestead to which they
naturally belonged. There as cadets, however humble, they were
certain of outward respect: once outside the influence of the head
of the house, and they were worse off than the lowest retainer. His
fellows would have resented any show of pride, and would speedily
have made his life intolerable. As he showed none, they almost
petted him, but at the same time expected him to do more than his
share of the work.</p>
<p>Felix listened with amazement to the revelations (revelations to
him) of the inner life of the camp and court. The king's
weaknesses, his inordinate gluttony and continual intoxication, his
fits of temper, his follies and foibles, seemed as familiar to
these grooms as if they had dwelt with him. As for the courtiers
and barons, there was not one whose vices and secret crimes were
not perfectly well known to them. Vice and crime must have their
instruments; instruments are invariably indiscreet, and thus
secrets escape. The palace intrigues, the intrigues with other
states, the influence of certain women, there was nothing which
they did not know.</p>
<p>Seen thus from below, the whole society appeared rotten and
corrupted, coarse to the last degree, and animated only by the
lowest motives. This very gossip seemed in itself criminal to
Felix, but he did not at the moment reflect that it was but the
tale of servants. Had such language been used by gentlemen, then it
would have been treason. As himself of noble birth, Felix had
hitherto seen things only from the point of view of his own class.
Now he associated with grooms, he began to see society from
<i>their</i> point of view, and recognised how feebly it was held
together by brute force, intrigue, cord and axe, and woman's
flattery. But a push seemed needed to overthrow it. Yet it was
quite secure, nevertheless, as there was none to give that push,
and if any such plot had been formed, those very slaves who
suffered the most would have been the very men to give information,
and to torture the plotters.</p>
<p>Felix had never dreamed that common and illiterate men, such as
these grooms and retainers, could have any conception of reasons of
State, or the crafty designs of courts. He now found that, though
they could neither writer nor read, they had learned the art of
reading man (the worst and lowest side of character) to such
perfection that they at once detected the motive. They read the
face; the very gait and gesture gave them a clue. They read man, in
fact, as an animal. They understood men just as they understood the
horses and hounds under their charge. Every mood and vicious
indication in those animals was known to them, and so, too, with
their masters.</p>
<p>Felix thought that he was himself a hunter, and understood
woodcraft; he now found how mistaken he had been. He had acquired
woodcraft as a gentleman; he now learned the knave's woodcraft.
They taught him a hundred tricks of which he had had no idea. They
stripped man of his dignity, and nature of her refinement.
Everything had a blackguard side to them. He began to understand
that high principles and abstract theories were only words with the
mass of men.</p>
<p>One day he saw a knight coolly trip up a citizen (one of the
king's levy) in the midst of the camp and in broad daylight, and
quietly cut away his purse, at least a score of persons looking on.
But they were only retainers and slaves; there was no one whose
word would for a moment have been received against the knight's,
who had observed this, and plundered the citizen with impunity. He
flung the lesser coins to the crowd, keeping the gold and silver
for himself, and walked off amidst their plaudits.</p>
<p>Felix saw a slave nailed to a tree, his arms put round it so as
to clasp it, and then nails driven through them. There he was left
in his agony to perish. No one knew what his fault had been; his
master had simply taken a dislike to him. A guard was set that no
one should relieve the miserable being. Felix's horror and
indignation could not have been expressed, but he was totally
helpless.</p>
<p>His own condition of mind during this time was such as could not
be well analysed. He did not himself understand whether his spirit
had been broken, whether he was really degraded with the men with
whom he lived, or why he remained with them, though there were
moments when it dawned upon him that this education, rude as it
was, was not without its value to him. He need not practise these
evils, but it was well to know of their existence. Thus he
remained, as it were, quiescent, and the days passed on. He really
had not much to do, although the rest put their burdens upon him,
for discipline was so lax, that the loosest attendance answered
equally well with the most conscientious. The one thing all the men
about him seemed to think of was the satisfying of their appetites;
the one thing they rejoiced at was the fine dry weather, for, as
his mates told him, the misery of camp life in rain was almost
unendurable.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-19" id="Chap2-19"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XIX<br/> FIGHTING</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Twice Felix saw the king. Once there was a review of the horse
outside the camp, and Felix, having to attend with his master's
third charger (a mere show and affectation, for there was not the
least chance of his needing it), was now and then very near the
monarch. For that day at least he looked every whit what fame had
reported him to be. A man of unusual size, his bulk rendered him
conspicuous in the front of the throng. His massive head seemed to
accord well with the possession of despotic power.</p>
<p>The brow was a little bare, for he was no longer young, but the
back of his head was covered with thick ringlets of brown hair, so
thick as to partly conceal the coronet of gold which he wore. A
short purple cloak, scarcely reaching to the waist, was thrown back
off his shoulders, so that his steel corselet glistened in the sun.
It was the only armour he had on; a long sword hung at his side. He
rode a powerful black horse, full eighteen hands high, by far the
finest animal on the ground; he required it, for his weight must
have been great. Felix passed near enough to note that his eyes
were brown, and the expression of his face open, frank, and
pleasing. The impression left upon the observer was that of a
strong intellect, but a still stronger physique, which latter too
often ran away with and controlled the former. No one could look
upon him without admiration, and it was difficult to think that he
could so demean himself as to wallow in the grossest
indulgence.</p>
<p>As for the review, though it was a brilliant scene, Felix could
not conceal from himself that these gallant knights were extremely
irregular in their movements, and not one single evolution was
performed correctly, because they were constantly quarrelling about
precedence, and one would not consent to follow the other. He soon
understood, however, that discipline was not the object, nor
regularity considered; personal courage and personal dexterity were
everything. This review was the prelude to active operations, and
Felix now hoped to have some practical lessons in warfare.</p>
<p>He was mistaken. Instead of a grand assault, or a regular
approach, the fighting was merely a series of combats between small
detachments and bodies of the enemy. Two or three knights with
their retainers and slaves would start forth, cross the stream, and
riding right past the besieged city endeavour to sack some small
hamlet, or the homestead of a noble. From the city a sortie would
ensue; sometimes the two bodies only threatened each other at a
distance, the first retiring as the second advanced. Sometimes only
a few arrows were discharged; occasionally they came to blows, but
the casualties were rarely heavy.</p>
<p>One such party, while returning, was followed by a squadron of
horsemen from the town towards the stream to within three hundred
yards of the king's quarters. Incensed at this assurance, several
knights mounted their horses and rode out to reinforce the
returning detachment, which was loaded with booty. Finding
themselves about to be supported, they threw down their spoils,
faced about, and Felix saw for the first time a real and desperate
<i>melée</i>. It was over in five minutes. The king's
knights, far better horsed, and filled with desire to exhibit their
valour to the camp, charged with such fury that they overthrew the
enemy and rode over him.</p>
<p>Felix saw the troops meet; there was a crash and cracking as the
lances broke, four or five rolled from the saddle on the trodden
corn, and the next moment the entangled mass of men and horses
unwound itself as the enemy hastened back to the walls. Felix was
eager to join in such an affray, but he had no horse nor weapon.
Upon another occasion early one bright morning four knights and
their followers, about forty in all, deliberately set out from the
camp, and advanced up the sloping ground towards the city. The camp
was soon astir watching their proceedings; and the king, being made
acquainted with what was going on, came out from his booth. Felix,
who now entered the circular entrenchment without any difficulty,
got up on the mound with scores of others, where, holding to the
stakes, they had a good view.</p>
<p>The king stood on a bench and watched the troops advance,
shading his eyes with his hand. As it was but half a mile to the
walls they could see all that took place. When the knights had got
within two hundred yards and arrows began to drop amongst them,
they dismounted from their horses and left them in charge of the
grooms, who walked them up and down, none remaining still a minute,
so as to escape the aim of the enemy's archers. Then drawing their
swords, the knights, who were in full armour, put themselves at the
head of the band, and advanced at a steady pace to the wall. In
their mail with their shields before them they cared not for such
feeble archery, nor even for the darts that poured upon them when
they came within reach. There was no fosse to the wall, so that,
pushing forward, they were soon at the foot. So easily had they
reached it that Felix almost thought the city already won. Now he
saw blocks of stone, darts, and beams of wood cast at them from the
parapet, which was not more than twelve feet above the ground.</p>
<p>Quite undismayed, the knights set up their ladders, of which
they had but four, one each. The men-at-arms held these by main
force against the wall, the besiegers trying to throw them away,
and chopping at the rungs with their axes. But the ladders were
well shod with iron to resist such blows, and in a moment Felix
saw, with intense delight and admiration, the four knights slowly
mount to the parapet and cut at the defenders with their swords.
The gleam of steel was distinctly visible as the blades rose and
fell. The enemy thrust at them with pikes, but seemed to shrink
from closer combat, and a moment afterwards the gallant four stood
on the top of the wall. Their figures, clad in mail and shield in
hand, were distinctly seen against the sky. Up swarmed the
men-at-arms behind them, and some seemed to descend on the other
side. A shout rose from the camp and echoed over the woods. Felix
shouted with the rest, wild with excitement.</p>
<p>The next minute, while yet the knights stood on the wall, and
scarcely seemed to know what to do next, there appeared at least a
dozen men in armour running along the wall towards them. Felix
afterwards understood that the ease with which the four won the
wall at first was owing to there being no men of knightly rank
among the defenders at that early hour. Those who had collected to
repulse the assault were citizens, retainers, slaves, any, in fact
who had been near. But now the news had reached the enemy's
leaders, and some of them hastened to the wall. As these were seen
approaching, the camp was hushed, and every eye strained on the
combatants.</p>
<p>The noble four could not all meet their assailants, the wall was
but wide enough for two to fight; but the other two had work enough
the next minute, as eight or ten more men in mail advanced the
other way. So they fought back to back, two facing one way, and two
the other. The swords rose and fell. Felix saw a flash of light fly
up into the air, it was the point of a sword broken off short. At
the foot of the wall the men who had not had time to mount
endeavoured to assist their masters by stabbing upwards with their
spears.</p>
<p>All at once two of the knights were hurled from the wall; one
seemed to be caught by his men, the other came heavily to the
ground. While they were fighting their immediate antagonists,
others within the wall had come with lances; and literally thrust
them from the parapet. The other two still fought back to back for
a moment; then, finding themselves overwhelmed, they sprang down
among their friends.</p>
<p>The minute the two first fell, the grooms with the horses ran
towards the wall, and despite the rain of arrows, darts, and stones
from the parapet, Felix saw with relief three of the four knights
placed on their chargers. One only could sit upright unassisted,
two were supported in their saddles, and the fourth was carried by
his retainers. Thus they retreated, and apparently without further
hurt, for the enemy on the wall crowded so much together as to
interfere with the aim of their darts, which, too, soon fell short.
But there was a dark heap beneath the wall, where ten or twelve
retainers and slaves, who wore no armour, had been slain or
disabled. Upon these the loss invariably fell.</p>
<p>None attempted to follow the retreating party, who slowly
returned towards the camp, and were soon apparently in safety. But
suddenly a fresh party of the enemy appeared upon the wall, and the
instant afterwards three retainers dropped, as if struck by
lightning. They had been hit by sling stones, whirled with great
force by practised slingers. These rounded pebbles come with such
impetus as to stun a man at two hundred yards. The aim, it is true,
is uncertain, but where there is a body of troops they are sure to
strike some one. Hastening on, leaving the three fallen men where
they lay, the rest in two minutes were out of range, and came
safely into camp. Everyone, as they crossed the stream, ran to meet
them, the king included, and as he passed in the throng, Felix
heard him remark that they had had a capital main of cocks that
morning.</p>
<p>Of the knights only one was much injured; he had fallen upon a
stone, and two ribs were broken; the rest suffered from severe
bruises, but had no wound. Six men-at-arms were missing, probably
prisoners, for, as courageous as their masters, they had leapt down
from the wall into the town. Eleven other retainers or slaves were
slain, or had deserted, or were prisoners, and no trouble was taken
about them. As for the three who were knocked over by the sling
stones, there they lay until they recovered their senses, when they
crawled into camp. This incident cooled Felix's ardour for the
fray, for he reflected that, if injured thus, he too, as a mere
groom, would be left. The devotion of the retainers to save and
succour their masters was almost heroic. The mailed knights thought
no more of their men, unless it was some particular favourite, than
of a hound slashed by a boar's tusk in the chase.</p>
<p>When the first flush of his excitement had passed, Felix,
thinking over the scene of the morning as he took his horses down
to water at the stream, became filled at first with contempt, and
then with indignation. That the first commander of the age should
thus look on while the wall was won before his eyes, and yet never
send a strong detachment, or move himself with his whole army to
follow up the advantage, seemed past understanding. If he did not
intend to follow it up, why permit such desperate ventures, which
must be overwhelmed by mere numbers, and could result only in the
loss of brave men? And if he did permit it, why did he not, when he
saw they were overthrown, send a squadron to cover their retreat?
To call such an exhibition of courage "a main of cocks", to look on
it as a mere display for his amusement, was barbarous and cruel in
the extreme. He worked himself up into a state of anger which
rendered him less cautious than usual in expressing his
opinions.</p>
<p>The king was not nearly so much at fault as Felix, arguing on
abstract principles, imagined. He had long experience of war, and
he knew its extreme uncertainty. The issue of the greatest battle
often hung on the conduct of a single leader, or even a single
man-at-arms. He had seen walls won and lost before. To follow up
such a venture with a strong detachment must result in one of two
things, either the detachment in its turn must be supported by the
entire army, or it must eventually retreat. If it retreated, the
loss of prestige would be serious, and might encourage the enemy to
attack the camp, for it was only his prestige which prevented them.
If supported by the entire army, then the fate of the whole
expedition depended upon that single day.</p>
<p>The enemy had the advantage of the wall, of the narrow streets
and enclosures within, of the houses, each of which would become a
fortress, and thus in the winding streets a repulse might easily
happen. To risk such an event would be folly in the last degree,
before the town had been dispirited and discouraged by the
continuance of the siege, the failure of their provisions, or the
fall of their chief leaders in the daily combats that took
place.</p>
<p>The army had no discipline whatever, beyond that of the
attachment of the retainer to his lord, and the dread of punishment
on the part of the slave. There were no distinct ranks, no
organized corps. The knights followed the greater barons, the
retainers the knights; the greater barons followed the king. Such
an army could not be risked in an assault of this kind. The venture
was not ordered, nor was it discouraged; to discourage, indeed, all
attempts would have been bad policy; it was upon the courage and
bravery of his knights that the king depended, and upon that alone
rested his hopes of victory.</p>
<p>The great baron whose standard they followed would have sent
them assistance if he had deemed it necessary. The king, unless on
the day of battle, would not trouble about such a detail. As for
the remark, that they had had "a good main of cocks that morning,"
he simply expressed the feeling of the whole camp. The spectacle
Felix had seen was, in fact, merely an instance of the strength and
of the weakness of the army and the monarch himself.</p>
<p>Felix afterwards acknowledged these things to himself, but at
the moment, full of admiration for the bravery of the four knights
and their followers, he was full of indignation, and uttered his
views too freely. His fellow-grooms cautioned him; but his spirit
was up, and he gave way to his feelings without restraint. Now, to
laugh at the king's weaknesses, his gluttony or follies, was one
thing; to criticise his military conduct was another. The one was
merely badinage, and the king himself might have laughed had he
heard it; the other was treason, and, moreover, likely to touch the
monarch on the delicate matter of military reputation.</p>
<p>Of this Felix quickly became aware. His mates, indeed, tried to
shield him; but possibly the citizen, his master, had enemies in
the camp, barons, perhaps, to whom he had lent money, and who
watched for a chance of securing his downfall. At all events, early
the next day Felix was rudely arrested by the provost in person,
bound with cords, and placed in the provost's booth. At the same
time, his master was ordered to remain within, and a guard was put
over him.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-20" id="Chap2-20"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XX<br/> IN DANGER</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Hope died within Felix when he thus suddenly found himself so
near the executioner. He had known so many butchered without cause,
that he had, indeed, reason to despair. Towards the sunset he felt
sure he should be dragged forth and hanged on the oak used for the
purpose, and which stood near where the track from Aisi joined the
camp. Such would most probably have been his fate, had he been
alone concerned in this affair, but by good fortune he was able to
escape so miserable an end. Still, he suffered as much as if the
rope had finished him, for he had no means of knowing what would be
the result.</p>
<p>His heart swelled with bitterness; he was filled with
inexpressible indignation, his whole being rebelled against the
blundering, as it were, of events which had thus thrown him into
the jaws of death. In an hour or two, however, he sufficiently
recovered from the shock to reflect that most probably they would
give him some chance to speak for himself. There would not be any
trial; who would waste time in trying so insignificant a wretch?
But there might be some opportunity of speaking, and he resolved to
use it to the utmost possible extent.</p>
<p>He would arraign the unskilful generalship of the king; he would
not only point out his errors, but how the enemy could be defeated.
He would prove that he had ideas and plans worthy of attention. He
would, as it were, vindicate himself before he was executed, and he
tried to collect his thoughts and to put them into form. Every
moment the face of Aurora seemed to look upon him, lovingly and
mournfully; but beside it he saw the dusty and distorted features
of the copse he had seen drawn by the horse through the camp. Thus,
too, his tongue would protrude and lick the dust. He endured, in a
word, those treble agonies which the highly-wrought and imaginative
inflict upon themselves.</p>
<p>The hours passed, and still no one came near him; he called, and
the guard appeared at the door, but only to see what was the
matter, and finding his prisoner safe, at once resumed his walk to
and fro. The soldier did not, for his own sake, dare to enter into
conversation with a prisoner under arrest for such an offence; he
might be involved, or suspected. Had it been merely theft or any
ordinary crime, he would have talked freely enough, and sympathized
with the prisoner. As time went on, Felix grew thirsty, but his
request for water was disregarded, and there he remained till four
in the afternoon. They then marched him out; he begged to be
allowed to speak, but the soldiery did not reply, simply hurrying
him forward. He now feared that he should be executed without the
chance being afforded him to say a word; but, to his surprise, he
found in a few minutes that they were taking him in the direction
of the king's quarters. New fears now seized him, for he had heard
of men being turned loose, made to run for their lives, and hunted
down with hounds for the amusement of the Court.</p>
<p>If the citizen's wealth had made him many enemies (men whom he
had befriended, and who hoped, if they could be see him executed,
to escape the payment of their debts), on the other hand, it had
made him as many friends, that is, interested friends, who trusted
by doing him service to obtain advances. These latter had lost no
time, for greed is quite as eager as hate, and carried the matter
at once to the king. What they desired was that the case should be
decided by the monarch himself, and not by his chancellor, or a
judge appointed for the purpose. The judge would be nearly certain
to condemn the citizen, and to confiscate whatever he could lay
hands on. The king might pardon, and would be content with a part
only, where his ministers would grasp all.</p>
<p>These friends succeeded in their object; the king, who hated all
judicial affairs because they involved the trouble of
investigation, shrugged his shoulders at the request, and would not
have granted it had it not come out that the citizen's servant had
declared him to be an incapable commander. At this the king
started. "We are, indeed, fallen low," said he, "when a miserable
trader's knave calls us incapable. We will see this impudent
rascal." He accordingly ordered that the prisoner should be brought
before him after dinner.</p>
<p>Felix was led inside the entrenchment, unbound, and commanded to
stand upright. There was a considerable assembly of the greater
barons anxious to see the trial of the money-lender, who, though
present, was kept apart from Felix lest the two should arrange
their defence. The king was sleeping on a couch outside the booth
in the shade; he was lying on his back breathing loudly with open
mouth. How different his appearance to the time when he sat on his
splendid charger and reviewed his knights! A heavy meal had been
succeeded by as heavy a slumber. No one dared to disturb him; the
assembly moved on tiptoe and conversed in whispers. The experienced
divined that the prisoners were certain to be condemned, for the
king would wake with indigestion, and vent his uneasy sensations
upon them. Full an hour elapsed before the king awoke with a snort
and called for a draught of water. How Felix envied that draught!
He had neither eaten nor drunk since the night previous; it was a
hot day, and his tongue was dry and parched.</p>
<p>The citizen was first accused; he denied any treasonable designs
or expressions whatever; as for the other prisoner, till the time
he was arrested he did not even know he had been in his service. He
was some stroller whom his grooms had incautiously engaged, the
lazy scoundrels, to assist them. He had never even spoken to him;
it the knave told the truth he must acknowledge this.</p>
<p>"How now," said the king, turning to Felix; "what do you
say?"</p>
<p>"It is true," replied Felix, "he has never spoken to me nor I to
him. He knew nothing of what I said. I said it on my own account,
and I say it again!"</p>
<p>"And pray, sir knave," said the king, sitting up on his couch,
for he was surprised to hear one so meanly dressed speak so
correctly, and so boldly face him. "What was it you did say?"</p>
<p>"If your majesty will order me a single drop of water," said the
prisoner, "I will repeat it word for word, but I have had nothing
the whole day, and I can hardly move my tongue."</p>
<p>Without a word the king handed him the cup from which he had
himself drunk. Never, surely, was water so delicious. Felix drained
it to the bottom, handed it back (an officer took it), and with one
brief thought of Aurora, he said: "Your majesty, you are an
incapable commander."</p>
<p>"Go on," said the king sarcastically; "why am I incapable?"</p>
<p>"You have attacked the wrong city; these three are all your
enemies, and you have attacked the first. They stand in a row."</p>
<p>"They stand in a row," repeated the king; "and we will knock
them over like three nine-pins."</p>
<p>"But you have begun with the end one," said Felix, "and that is
the mistake. For after you have taken the first you must take the
second, and still after that the third. But you might have saved
much trouble and time if----"</p>
<p>"If what?"</p>
<p>"If you had assaulted the middle one first. For then, while the
siege went on, you would have been able to prevent either of the
other two towns from sending assistance, and when you had taken the
first and put your garrison in it, neither of the others could have
stirred, or reaped their corn, nor could they even communicate with
each other, since you would be between them; and in fact you would
have cut your enemies in twain."</p>
<p>"By St. John!" swore the king, "it is a good idea. I begin to
think—but go on, you have more to say."</p>
<p>"I think, too, your majesty, that by staying here as you have
done this fortnight past without action, you have encouraged the
other two cities to make more desperate resistance; and it seems to
me that you are in a dangerous position, and may at any moment be
overwhelmed with disaster, for there is nothing whatever to prevent
either of the other two from sending troops to burn the open city
of Aisi in your absence. And that danger must increase every day as
they take courage by your idleness."</p>
<p>"Idleness! There shall be idleness no longer. The man speaks the
truth; we will consider further of this, we will move on
Adelinton," turning to his barons.</p>
<p>"If it please your majesty," said Baron Ingulph, "this man
invented a new trigger for our carriage crossbows, but he was lost
in the crowd, and we have sought for him in vain; my serjeant here
has this moment recognised him."</p>
<p>"Why did you not come to us before, fellow?" said the king. "Let
him be released; let him be entertained at our expense; give him
clothes and a sword. We will see you further."</p>
<p>Overjoyed at this sudden turn of fortune, Felix forgot to let
well alone. He had his audience with him for a moment; he could not
resist as it were following up his victory. He thanked the king,
and added that he could make a machine which would knock the walls
yonder to pieces without it being necessary to approach nearer than
half a bow-shot.</p>
<p>"What is this?" said the king. "Ingulph, have you ever heard of
such a machine?"</p>
<p>"There is no such thing," said the Baron, beginning to feel that
his professional reputation as the master of the artillery was
assailed. "There is nothing of the kind known."</p>
<p>"It will shoot stones as big, as heavy as a man can lift," said
Felix eagerly, "and easily knock towers to fragments."</p>
<p>The king looked from one to another; he was incredulous. The
Baron smiled scornfully. "Ask him, your majesty, how these stones
are to be thrown; no bow could do it."</p>
<p>"How are the stones to be thrown?" said the king sharply.
"Beware how you play with us."</p>
<p>"By the force of twisted ropes, your majesty."</p>
<p>They all laughed. The Baron said: "You see, your majesty, there
is nothing of the kind. This is some jester."</p>
<p>"The twisted rope should be a halter," said another courtier,
one of those who hoped for the rich man's downfall.</p>
<p>"It can be done, your majesty," cried Felix, alarmed. "I assure
you, a stone of two hundredweight might be thrown a quarter of a
mile."</p>
<p>The assembly did not repress its contempt.</p>
<p>"The man is a fool," said the king, who now thought that Felix
was a jester who had put a trick upon him. "But your joke is out of
joint; I will teach such fellows to try tricks on us! Beat him out
of camp."</p>
<p>The provost's men seized him, and in a moment he was dragged off
his feet, and bodily carried outside the entrenchment. Thence they
pushed him along, beating him with the butts of their spears to
make him run the faster; the groups they passed laughed and jeered;
the dogs barked and snapped at his ankles. They hurried him outside
the camp, and thrusting him savagely with their spear butts sent
him headlong. There they left him, with the caution which he did
not hear, being insensible, that if he ventured inside the lines he
would be at once hanged. Like a dead dog they left him on the
ground.</p>
<p>Some hours later, in the dusk of the evening, Felix stole from
the spot, skirting the forest like a wild animal afraid to venture
from its cover, till he reached the track which led to Aisi. His
one idea was to reach his canoe. He would have gone through the
woods, but that was not possible. Without axe or wood-knife to hew
a way, the tangled brushwood he knew to be impassable, having
observed how thick it was when coming. Aching and trembling in
every limb, not so much with physical suffering as that kind of
inward fever which follows unmerited injury, the revolt of the mind
against it, he followed the track as fast as his weary frame would
let him. He had tasted nothing that day but the draught from the
king's cup, and a second draught when he recovered consciousness,
from the stream that flowed past the camp. Yet he walked steadily
on without pause; his head hung forward, and his arms were
listless, but his feet mechanically plodded on. He walked, indeed,
by his will, and not with his sinews. Thus, like a ghost, for there
was no life in him, he traversed the shadowy forest.</p>
<p>The dawn came, and still he kept onwards. As the sun rose
higher, having now travelled fully twenty miles, he saw houses on
the right of the trail. They were evidently those of retainers or
workmen employed on the manor, for a castle stood at some
distance.</p>
<p>An hour later he approached the second or open city of Aisi,
where the ferry was across the channel. In his present condition he
could not pass through the town. No one there knew of his disgrace,
but it was the same to him as if they had. Avoiding the town
itself, he crossed the cultivated fields, and upon arriving at the
channel he at once stepped in, and swam across to the opposite
shore. It was not more than sixty yards, but, weary as he was, it
was an exhausting effort. He sat down, but immediately got up and
struggled on.</p>
<p>The church tower on the slope of the hill was a landmark by
which he easily discovered the direction of the spot where he had
hidden the canoe. But he felt unable to push through the belt of
brushwood, reeds, and flags beside the shore, and therefore struck
through the firs, following a cattle track, which doubtless led to
another grazing ground. This ran parallel with the shore, and when
he judged himself about level with the canoe he left it, and
entered the wood itself. For a little way he could walk, but the
thick fir branches soon blocked his progress, and he could progress
only on hands and knees, creeping beneath them. There was a hollow
space under the lower branches free from brushwood.</p>
<p>Thus he painfully approached the Lake, and descending the hill,
after an hour's weary work emerged among the rushes and reeds. He
was within two hundred yards of the canoe, for he recognised the
island opposite it. In ten minutes he found it undisturbed and
exactly as he had left it, except that the breeze had strewn the
dry reeds with which it was covered with willow leaves, yellow and
dead (they fall while all the rest are green), which had been
whirled from the branches. Throwing himself upon the reeds beside
the canoe, he dropped asleep as if he had been dead.</p>
<p>He awoke as the sun was sinking and sat up, hungry in the
extreme, but much refreshed. There were still some stores in the
canoe, of which he ate ravenously. But he felt better now; he felt
at home beside his boat. He could hardly believe in the reality of
the hideous dream through which he had passed. But when he tried to
stand, his feet, cut and blistered, only too painfully assured him
of its reality. He took out his hunter's hide and cloak and spread
himself a comfortable bed. Though he had slept so long he was still
weary. He reclined in a semi-unconscious state, his frame slowly
recovering from the strain it had endured, till by degrees he fell
asleep again. Sleep, nothing but sleep, restores the overtaxed mind
and body.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-21" id="Chap2-21"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXI<br/> A VOYAGE</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>The sun was up when Felix awoke, and as he raised himself the
beauty of the Lake before him filled him with pleasure. By the
shore it was so calm that the trees were perfectly reflected, and
the few willow leaves that had fallen floated without drifting one
way or the other. Farther out the islands were lit up with the
sunlight, and the swallows skimmed the water, following the outline
of their shores. In the Lake beyond them, glimpses of which he
could see through the channel or passage between, there was a
ripple where the faint south-western breeze touched the surface.
His mind went out to the beauty of it. He did not question or
analyse his feelings; he launched his vessel, and left that hard
and tyrannical land for the loveliness of the water.</p>
<p>Paddling out to the islands he passed through between them, and
reached the open Lake. There he hoisted the sail, the gentle breeze
filled it, the sharp cutwater began to divide the ripples, a
bubbling sound arose, and steering due north, straight out to the
open and boundless expanse, he was carried swiftly away.</p>
<p>The mallards, who saw the canoe coming, at first scarcely moved,
never thinking that a boat would venture outside the islands,
within whose line they were accustomed to see vessels, but when the
canoe continued to bear down upon them, they flew up and descended
far away to one side. When he had sailed past the spot where these
birds had floated, the Lake was his own. By the shores of the
islands the crows came down for mussels. Moorhens swam in and out
among the rushes, water-rats nibbled at the flags, pikes basked at
the edge of the weeds, summer-snipes ran along the sand, and
doubtless an otter here and there was in concealment. Without the
line of the shoals and islets, now that the mallards had flown,
there was a solitude of water. It was far too deep for the longest
weeds, nothing seemed to exist here. The very water-snails seek the
shore, or are drifted by the currents into shallow corners. Neither
great nor little care for the broad expanse.</p>
<p>The canoe moved more rapidly as the wind came now with its full
force over the distant woods and hills, and though it was but a
light southerly breeze, the broad sail impelled the taper vessel
swiftly. Reclining in the stern, Felix lost all consciousness of
aught but that he was pleasantly borne along. His eyes were not
closed, and he was aware of the canoe, the Lake, the sunshine, and
the sky, and yet he was asleep. Physically awake, he mentally
slumbered. It was rest. After the misery, exertion, and excitement
of the last fortnight it was rest, intense rest for body and mind.
The pressure of the water against the handle of the rudder-paddle,
the slight vibration of the wood, as the bubbles rushed by beneath,
alone perhaps kept him from really falling asleep. This was
something which could not be left to itself; it must be firmly
grasped, and that effort restrained his drowsiness.</p>
<p>Three hours passed. The shore was twelve or fifteen miles
behind, and looked like a blue cloud, for the summer haze hid the
hills, more than would have been the case in clearer weather.</p>
<p>Another hour, and at last Felix, awakening from his slumberous
condition, looked round and saw nothing but the waves. The shore he
had left had entirely disappeared, gone down; if there were land
more lofty on either hand, the haze concealed it. He looked again;
he could scarcely comprehend it. He knew the Lake was very wide,
but it had never occurred to him that he might possibly sail out of
sight of land. This, then was why the mariners would not quit the
islands; they feared the open water. He stood up and swept the
horizon carefully, shading his eyes with his hand; there was
nothing but a mist at the horizon. He was alone with the sun, the
sky, and the Lake. He could not surely have sailed into the ocean
without knowing it? He sat down, dipped his hand overboard and
tasted the drops that adhered; the water was pure and sweet, warm
from the summer sunshine.</p>
<p>There was not so much as a swift in the upper sky; nothing but
slender filaments of white cloud. No swallows glided over the
surface of the water. If there were fishes he could not see them
through the waves, which were here much larger; sufficiently large,
though the wind was light, to make his canoe rise and fall with
their regular rolling. To see fishes a calm surface is necessary,
and, like other creatures, they haunt the shallows and the shore.
Never had he felt alone like this in the depths of the farthest
forest he had penetrated. Had he contemplated beforehand the
possibility of passing out of sight of land, when he found that the
canoe had arrived he would probably have been alarmed and anxious
for his safety. But thus stumbling drowsily into the solitude of
the vast Lake, he was so astounded with his own discovery, so
absorbed in thinking of the immense expanse, that the idea of
danger did not occur to him.</p>
<p>Another hour passed, and he now began to gaze about him more
eagerly for some sight of land, for he had very little provision
with him, and he did not wish to spend the night upon the Lake.
Presently, however, the mist on the horizon ahead appeared to
thicken, and then became blue, and in a shorter time than he
expected land came in sight. This arose from the fact of its being
low, so that he had approached nearer than he knew before
recognising it. At the time when he was really out of sight of the
coast, he was much further from the hilly land left behind than
from the low country in front, and not in the mathematical centre,
as he had supposed, of the Lake. As it rose and came more into
sight, he already began to wonder what reception he should meet
with from the inhabitants, and whether he should find them as hard
of heart as the people he had just escaped from. Should he, indeed,
venture among them at all? Or should he remain in the woods till he
had observed more of their ways and manners? These questions were
being debated in his mind, when he perceived that the wind was
falling.</p>
<p>As the sun went past the meridian the breeze fell, till, in the
hottest part of the afternoon, and when he judged that he was not
more than eight miles from shore, it sank to the merest zephyr, and
the waves by degrees diminished. So faint became the breeze in
half-an-hour's time, and so intermittent, that he found it patience
wasted even to hold the rudder-paddle. The sail hung and was no
longer bellied out; as the idle waves rolled under, it flapped
against the mast. The heat was now so intolerable, the light
reflected from the water increasing the sensation, that he was
obliged to make himself some shelter by partly lowering the sail,
and hauling the yard athwart the vessel, so that the canvas acted
as an awning. Gradually the waves declined in volume, and the
gentle breathing of the wind ebbed away, till at last the surface
was almost still, and he could feel no perceptible air
stirring.</p>
<p>Weary of sitting in the narrow boat, he stood up, but he could
not stretch himself sufficiently for the change to be of much use.
The long summer day, previously so pleasant, now appeared scarcely
endurable. Upon the silent water the time lingered, for there was
nothing to mark its advance, not so much as a shadow beyond that of
his own boat. The waves having now no crest, went under the canoe
without chafing against it, or rebounding, so that they were
noiseless. No fishes rose to the surface. There was nothing living
near, except a blue butterfly, which settled on the mast, having
ventured thus far from land. The vastness of the sky, over-arching
the broad water, the sun, and the motionless filaments of cloud,
gave no repose for his gaze, for they were seemingly still. To the
weary gaze motion is repose; the waving boughs, the foam-tipped
waves, afford positive rest to look at. Such intense stillness as
this of the summer sky was oppressive; it was like living in space
itself, in the ether above. He welcomed at last the gradual
downward direction of the sun, for, as the heat decreased, he could
work with the paddle.</p>
<p>Presently he furled the sail, took his paddle, and set his face
for the land. He laboured steadily, but made no apparent progress.
The canoe was heavy, and the outrigger or beam, which was of
material use in sailing, was a drawback to paddling. He worked till
his arms grew weary, and still the blue land seemed as far off as
ever.</p>
<p>But by the time the sun began to approach the horizon, his
efforts had produced some effect, the shore was visible, and the
woods beyond. They were still five miles distant, and he was tired;
there was little chance of his reaching it before night. He put his
paddle down for refreshment and rest, and while he was thus
engaged, a change took place. A faint puff of air came; a second,
and a third; a tiny ripple ran along the surface. Now he
recollected that he had heard that the mariners depended a great
deal on the morning and the evening—the land and the
Lake—breeze as they worked along the shore. This was the
first breath of the Land breeze. It freshened after a while, and he
re-set his sail.</p>
<p>An hour or so afterwards he came near the shore; he heard the
thrushes singing, and the cuckoo calling, long before he landed. He
did not stay to search about for a creek, but ran the canoe on the
strand, which was free of reeds or flags, a sign that the waves
often beat furiously there, rolling as they must for so many miles.
He hauled the canoe up as high as he could, but presently when he
looked about him he found that he was on a small and narrow island,
with a channel in the rear. Tired as he was, yet anxious for the
safety of his canoe, he pushed off again, and paddled round and
again beached her with the island between her and the open Lake.
Else he feared if a south wind should blow she might be broken to
pieces on the strand before his eyes. It was prudent to take the
precaution, but, as it happened, the next day the Lake was
still.</p>
<p>He could see no traces of human occupation upon the island,
which was of small extent and nearly bare, and therefore, in the
morning, paddled across the channel to the mainland, as he thought.
But upon exploring the opposite shore, it proved not to be the
mainland, but merely another island. Paddling round it, he tried
again, but with the same result; he found nothing but island after
island, all narrow, and bearing nothing except bushes. Observing a
channel which seemed to go straight in among these islets, he
resolved to follow it, and did so (resting at noon-time) the whole
morning. As he paddled slowly in, he found the water shallower, and
weeds, bulrushes, and reeds became thick, except quite in the
centre.</p>
<p>After the heat of midday had gone over, he resumed his voyage,
and still found the same; islets and banks, more or less covered
with hawthorn bushes, willow, elder, and alder, succeeded to
islets, fringed round their edges with reeds and reed canary-grass.
When he grew weary of paddling, he landed and stayed the night; the
next day he went on again, and still for hour after hour rowed in
and out among these banks and islets, till he began to think he
should never find his way out.</p>
<p>The farther he penetrated the more numerous became the
waterfowl. Ducks swam among the flags, or rose with a rush and
splashing. Coots and moorhens dived and hid in the reeds. The
lesser grebe sank at the sound of the paddle like a stone. A strong
northern diver raised a wave as he hurried away under the water,
his course marked by the undulation above him. Sedge-birds chirped
in the willows; black-headed buntings sat on the trees, and watched
him without fear. Bearded titmice were there, clinging to the
stalks of the sedges, and long-necked herons rose from the reedy
places where they love to wade. Blue dragon-flies darted to and
fro, or sat on water-plants as if they were flowers. Snakes swam
across the channels, vibrating their heads from side to side.
Swallows swept over his head. Pike "struck" from the verge of the
thick weeds as he came near. Perch rose for insects as they fell
helpless into the water.</p>
<p>He noticed that the water, though so thick with reeds, was as
clear as that in the open Lake; there was no scum such as
accumulates in stagnant places. From this he concluded that there
must be a current, however slight, perhaps from rivers flowing into
this part of the Lake. He felt the strongest desire to explore
farther till he reached the mainland, but he reflected that mere
exploration was not his object; it would never obtain Aurora for
him. There were no signs whatever of human habitation, and from
reeds and bulrushes, however interesting, nothing could be gained.
Reluctantly, therefore, on the third morning, having passed the
night on one of the islets, he turned his canoe, and paddled
southwards towards the Lake.</p>
<p>He did not for a moment attempt to retrace the channel by which
he had entered; it would have been an impossibility; he took
advantage of any clear space to push through. It took him as long
to get out as it had to get in; it was the afternoon of the fourth
day when he at last regained the coast. He rested the remainder of
the afternoon, wishing to start fresh in the morning, having
determined to follow the line of the shore eastwards, and so
gradually to circumnavigate the Lake. If he succeeded in nothing
else, that at least would be something to relate to Aurora.</p>
<p>The morning rose fair and bright, with a south-westerly air
rather than a breeze. He sailed before it; it was so light that his
progress could not have exceeded more than three miles an hour.
Hour after hour passed away, and still he followed the line of the
shore, now going a short way out to skirt an island, and now nearer
it to pass between sandbanks. By noon he was so weary of sitting in
the canoe that he ran her ashore, and rested awhile.</p>
<p>It was the very height of the heat of the day when he set forth
again, and the wind lighter than in the morning. It had, however,
changed a little, and blew now from the west, almost too exactly
abaft to suit his craft. He could not make a map while sailing, or
observe his position accurately, but it appeared to him that the
shore trended towards the south-east, so that he was gradually
turning an arc. He supposed from this that he must be approaching
the eastern end of the Lake. The water seemed shallower, to judge
from the quantity of weeds. Now and then he caught glimpses between
the numerous islands of the open Lake, and there, too, the weeds
covered the surface in many places.</p>
<p>In an hour or two the breeze increased considerably, and
travelling so much quicker, he found it required all his dexterity
to steer past the islands and clear the banks upon which he was
drifting. Once or twice he grazed the willows that overhung the
water, and heard the keel of the canoe drag on the bottom. As much
as possible he bore away from the mainland, steering south-east,
thinking to find deeper water, and to be free of the islets. He
succeeded in the first, but the islets were now so numerous that he
could not tell where the open Lake was. The farther the afternoon
advanced, the more the breeze freshened, till occasionally, as it
blew between the islands, it struck his mast almost with the force
of a gale. Felix welcomed the wind, which would enable him to make
great progress before evening. If such favouring breezes would
continue, he could circumnavigate the waters in a comparatively
short time, and might return to Aurora, so far, at least,
successful. Hope filled his heart, and he sang to the wind.</p>
<p>The waves could not rise among these islands, which intercepted
them before they could roll far enough to gather force, so that he
had all the advantage of the gale without its risks. Except a light
haze all round the horizon, the sky was perfectly clear, and it was
pleasant now the strong current of air cooled the sun's heat. As he
came round the islands he constantly met and disturbed parties of
waterfowl, mallards, and coots. Sometimes they merely hid in the
weeds, sometimes they rose, and when they did so passed to his
rear.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-22" id="Chap2-22"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXII<br/> DISCOVERIES</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>This little circumstance of the mallards always flying over him
and away behind, when flushed, presently made Felix speculate on
the cause, and he kept a closer watch. He now saw (what had,
indeed, been going on for some time) that there was a ceaseless
stream of waterfowl, mallards, ducks, coots, moorhens, and lesser
grebes coming towards him, swimming to the westward. As they met
him they parted and let him through, or rose and went over. Next he
noticed that the small birds on the islands were also travelling in
the same direction, that is against the wind. They did not seem in
any haste, but flitted from islet to islet, bush to tree, feeding
and gossiping as they went; still the movement was distinct.</p>
<p>Finches, linnets, blackbirds, thrushes, wrens, and whitethroats,
and many others, all passed him, and he could see the same thing
going on to his right and left. Felix became much interested in
this migration, all the more singular as it was the nesting-time,
and hundreds of these birds must have left their nests with eggs or
young behind them. Nothing that he could think of offered an
adequate explanation. He imagined he saw shoals of fishes going the
same way, but the surface of the water being ruffled, and the canoe
sailing rapidly, he could not be certain. About an hour after he
first observed the migration the stream of birds ceased
suddenly.</p>
<p>There were no waterfowls in the water, and no finches in the
bushes. They had evidently all passed. Those in the van of the
migratory army were no doubt scattered and thinly distributed, so
that he had been meeting the flocks a long while before he
suspected it. The nearer he approached their centre the thicker
they became, and on getting through that he found a solitude. The
weeds were thicker than ever, so that he had constantly to edge
away from where he supposed the mainland to lie. But there were no
waterfowls and no birds on the islets. Suddenly as he rounded a
large island he saw what for the moment he imagined to be a line of
white surf, but the next instant he recognised a solid mass, as it
were, of swallows and martins flying just over the surface of the
water straight towards him. He had no time to notice how far they
extended before they had gone by him with a rushing sound. Turning
to look back, he saw them continue directly west in the teeth of
the wind.</p>
<p>Like the water and the islands, the sky was now cleared of
birds, and not a swallow remained. Felix asked himself if he were
running into some unknown danger, but he could not conceive any.
The only thing that occurred to him was the possibility of the wind
rising to a hurricane; that gave him no alarm, because the numerous
islands would afford shelter. So complete was the shelter in some
places, that as he passed along his sail drew above, while the
surface of the water, almost surrounded with bushes and willows,
was smooth. No matter to how many quarters of the compass the wind
might veer, he should still be able to get under the lee of one or
other of the banks.</p>
<p>The sky remained without clouds; there was nothing but a slight
haze, which he sometimes fancied looked thicker in front or to the
eastward. There was nothing whatever to cause the least uneasiness;
on the contrary, his curiosity was aroused, and he was desirous of
discovering what it was that had startled the birds. After a while
the water became rather more open, with sandbanks instead of
islands, so that he could see around him for a considerable
distance. By a large bank, behind which the ripple was stilled, he
saw a low wave advancing towards him, and moving against the wind.
It was followed by two others at short intervals, and though he
could not see them, he had no doubt shoals of fishes were passing
and had raised the undulations.</p>
<p>The sedges on the sandbanks appeared brown and withered, as if
it had been autumn instead of early summer. The flags were brown at
the tip, and the aquatic grasses had dwindled. They looked as if
they could not grow, and had reached but half their natural height.
From the low willows the leaves were dropping, faded and yellow,
and the thorn bushes were shrivelled and covered with the white
cocoons of caterpillars. The farther he sailed the more desolate
the banks seemed, and trees ceased altogether. Even the willows
were fewer and stunted, and the highest thorn bush was not above
his chest. His vessel was now more exposed to the wind, so that he
drove past the banks and scattered islands rapidly, and he noticed
that there was not so much as a crow on them. Upturned
mussel-shells, glittering in the sunshine, showed where crows had
been at work, but there was not one now visible.</p>
<p>Felix thought that the water had lost its clearness and had
become thick, which he put down to the action of the wavelets
disturbing the sand in the shallows. Ahead the haze, or mist, was
now much thicker, and was apparently not over a mile distant. It
hid the islands and concealed everything. He expected to enter it
immediately, but it receded as he approached. Along the strand of
an island he passed there was a dark line like a stain, and in
still water under the lee the surface was covered with a floating
scum. Felix, on seeing this, at once concluded that he had
unknowingly entered a gulf, and had left the main Lake, for the
only place he had ever seen scum before was at the extremity of a
creek near home, where the water was partly stagnant on a marshy
level. The water of the Lake was proverbial for its purity and
clearness.</p>
<p>He kept, therefore, a sharp look-out, expecting every moment to
sight the end of the gulf or creek in which he supposed himself
sailing, so that he might be ready to lower his sail. By degrees
the wind had risen till it now blew with fury, but the numerous
sandflats so broke up the waves that he found no inconvenience from
them. One solitary gull passed over at a great height, flying
steadily westwards against the wind. The canoe now began to
overtake fragments of scum drifting before the wind, and rising up
and down on the ripples. Once he saw a broad piece rise to the
surface together with a quantity of bubbles. None of the sandbanks
now rose more than a foot or so above the surface, and were
entirely bare, mere sand and gravel.</p>
<p>The mist ahead was sensibly nearer, and yet it eluded him; it
was of a faint yellow, and though so thin, obscured everything
where it hovered. From out of the mist there presently appeared a
vast stretch of weeds. They floated on the surface and undulated to
the wavelets, a pale yellowish green expanse. Felix was hesitating
whether to lower his sail or attempt to drive over them, when, as
he advanced and the mist retreated, he saw open water beyond. The
weeds extended on either hand as far as he could see, but they were
only a narrow band, and he hesitated no longer. He felt the canoe
graze the bottom once as he sailed over the weeds. The water was
free of sandbanks beyond them, but he could see large islands
looming in several directions.</p>
<p>Glancing behind him he perceived that the faint yellow mist had
closed in and now encircled him. It came with two or three hundred
yards, and was not affected by the wind, rough as it was. Quite
suddenly he noticed that the water on which the canoe floated was
black. The wavelets which rolled alongside were black, and the
slight spray that occasionally flew on board was black, and stained
the side of the vessel. This greatly astonished and almost shocked
him; it was so opposite and contrary to all his ideas about the
Lake, the very mirror of purity. He leant over, and dipped up a
little in the palm of his hand; it did not appear black in such a
small quantity, it seemed a rusty brown, but he became aware of an
offensive odour. The odour clung to his hand, and he could not
remove it, to his great disgust. It was like nothing he had ever
smelt before, and not in the least like the vapour of marshes.</p>
<p>By now being some distance from any island, the wavelets
increased in size, and spray flew on board, wetting everything with
this black liquid. Instead of level marshes and the end of the
gulf, it appeared as if the water were deep, and also as if it
widened. Exposed to the full press of the gale, Felix began to fear
that he should not be able to return very easily against it. He did
not know what to do. The horrid blackness of the water disposed him
to turn about and tack out; on the other hand, having set out on a
voyage of discovery, and having now found something different to
the other parts of the Lake, he did not like to retreat. He sailed
on, thinking to presently pass these loathsome waters.</p>
<p>He was now hungry, and indeed thirsty, but was unable to drink
because he had no water-barrel. No vessel sailing on the Lake ever
carried a water-barrel, since such pure water was always under
their bows. He was cramped, too, with long sitting in the canoe,
and the sun was perceptibly sloping in the west. He determined to
land and rest, and with this purpose steered to the right under the
lee of a large island, so large, indeed, that he was not certain it
was not part of the mainland or one side of the gulf. The water was
very deep close up to the shore, but, to his annoyance, the strand
appeared black, as if soaked with the dark water. He skirted along
somewhat farther, and found a ledge of low rocks stretching out
into the Lake, so that he was obliged to run ashore before coming
to these.</p>
<p>On landing, the black strand, to his relief, was fairly firm,
for he had dreaded sinking to the knees in it; but its appearance
was so unpleasant that he could not bring himself to sit down. He
walked on towards the ledge of rocks, thinking to find a pleasanter
place there. They were stratified, and he stepped on them to climb
up, when his foot went deep into the apparently hard rock. He
kicked it, and his shoe penetrated it as if it had been soft sand.
It was impossible to climb up the reef. The ground rose inland, and
curious to see around him as far as possible, he ascended the
slope.</p>
<p>From the summit, however, he could not see farther than on the
shore, for the pale yellow mist rose up round him, and hid the
canoe on the strand. The extreme desolation of the dark and barren
ground repelled him; there was not a tree, bush, or living
creature, not so much as a buzzing fly. He turned to go down, and
then for the first time noticed that the disk of the sun was
surrounded with a faint blue rim, apparently caused by the yellow
vapour. So much were the rays shorn of their glare, that he could
look at the sun without any distress, but its heat seemed to have
increased, though it was now late in the afternoon.</p>
<p>Descending towards the canoe, he fancied the wind had veered
considerably. He sat down in the boat, and took some food; it was
without relish, as he had nothing to drink, and the great heat had
tired him. Wearily, and without thinking, he pushed off the canoe;
she slowly floated out, when, as he was about to hoist up the sail,
a tremendous gust of wind struck him down on the thwarts, and
nearly carried him overboard. He caught the mast as he fell, or
over he must have gone into the black waves. Before he could
recover himself, she drifted against the ledge of rocks, which
broke down and sank before the bow, so that she passed over
uninjured.</p>
<p>Felix got out a paddle, and directed the canoe as well as he
could; the fury of the wind was irresistible, and he could only
drive before it. In a few minutes, as he was swept along the shore,
he was carried between it and another immense reef. Here, the waves
being broken and less powerful, he contrived to get the heavy canoe
ashore again, and, jumping out, dragged her up as far as he could
on the land. When he had done this, he found to his surprise that
the gale had ceased. The tremendous burst of wind had been
succeeded by a perfect calm, and the waves had already lost their
violent impetus.</p>
<p>This was a relief, for he had feared that the canoe would be
utterly broken to pieces; but soon he began to doubt if it were an
unmixed benefit, as without a wind he could not move from this
dismal place that evening. He was too weary to paddle far. He sat
on the canoe to rest himself, and, whether from fatigue or other
causes, fell asleep. His head heavily dropping on his chest partly
woke him several times, but his lassitude overcame the discomfort,
and he slept on. When he got up he felt dazed and unrefreshed, as
if sleeping had been hard work. He was extremely thirsty, and
oppressed with the increasing heat. The sun had sunk, or rather was
so low that the high ground hid it from sight.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-23" id="Chap2-23"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXIII<br/> STRANGE THINGS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>The thought struck Felix that perhaps he might find a spring
somewhere in the island, and he started at once up over the hill.
At the top he paused. The sun had not sunk, but had disappeared as
a disk. In its place was a billow of blood, for so it looked, a
vast up-heaved billow of glowing blood surging on the horizon. Over
it flickered a tint of palest blue, like that seen in fire. The
black waters reflected the glow, and the yellow vapour around was
suffused with it. Though momentarily startled, Felix did not much
heed these appearances; he was still dazed and heavy from his
sleep.</p>
<p>He went on, looking for a spring, sometimes walking on firm
ground, sometimes sinking to the ankle in a friable soil like black
sand. The ground looked, indeed, as if it had been burnt, but there
were no charred stumps of timber such as he had seen on the sites
of forest fires. The extreme dreariness seemed to oppress his
spirits, and he went on and on in a heavy waking dream. Descending
into a plain, he lost sight of the flaming sunset and the black
waters. In the level plain the desolation was yet more marked;
there was not a grass-blade or plant; the surface was hard, black,
and burned, resembling iron, and indeed in places it resounded to
his feet, though he supposed that was the echo from hollow passages
beneath.</p>
<p>Several times he shook himself, straightened himself up, and
endeavoured to throw off the sense of drowsy weight which increased
upon him. He could not do so; he walked with bent back, and crept,
as it were, over the iron land which radiated heat. A shimmer like
that of water appeared in front; he quickened his pace, but could
not get to it, and realized presently that it was a mirage which
receded as he advanced. There was no pleasant summer twilight; the
sunset was succeeded by an indefinite gloom, and while this shadow
hung overhead the yellow vapour around was faintly radiant. Felix
suddenly stopped, having stepped, as he thought, on a skeleton.</p>
<p>Another glance, however, showed that it was merely the
impression of one, the actual bones had long since disappeared. The
ribs, the skull, and limbs were drawn on the black ground in white
lines as if it had been done with a broad piece of chalk. Close by
he found three or four more, intertangled and superimposed as if
the unhappy beings had fallen partly across each other, and in that
position had mouldered away leaving nothing but their outline. From
among a variety of objects that were scattered about Felix picked
up something that shone; it was a diamond bracelet of one large
stone, and a small square of blue china tile with a curious
heraldic animal drawn on it. Evidently these had belonged to one or
other of the party who had perished.</p>
<p>Though startled at the first sight, it was curious that Felix
felt so little horror; the idea did not occur to him that he was in
danger as these had been. Inhaling the gaseous emanations from the
soil and contained in the yellow vapour, he had become narcotized,
and moved as if under the influence of opium, while wide awake, and
capable of rational conduct. His senses were deadened, and did not
carry the usual vivid impression to the mind; he saw things as if
they were afar off. Accidentally looking back, he found that his
footmarks, as far as he could see, shone with a phosphoric light
like that of "touchwood" in the dark. Near at hand they did not
shine; the appearance did not come till some few minutes had
elapsed. His track was visible behind till the vapour hid it. As
the evening drew on the vapour became more luminous, and somewhat
resembled an aurora.</p>
<p>Still anxious for water, he proceeded as straight ahead as he
could, and shortly became conscious of an indefinite cloud which
kept pace with him on either side. When he turned to look at either
of the clouds, the one looked at disappeared. It was not condensed
enough to be visible to direct vision, yet he was aware of it from
the corner of his eye. Shapeless and threatening, the gloomy
thickness of the air floated beside him like the vague monster of a
dream. Sometimes he fancied that he saw an arm or a limb among the
folds of the cloud, or an approach to a face; the instant he looked
it vanished. Marching at each hand these vapours bore him horrible
company.</p>
<p>His brain became unsteady, and flickering things moved about
him; yet, though alarmed, he was not afraid; his senses were not
acute enough for fear. The heat increased; his hands were
intolerably hot as if he had been in a fever, he panted; but did
not perspire. A dry heat like an oven burned his blood in his
veins. His head felt enlarged, and his eyes seemed alight; he could
see these two globes of phosphoric light under his brows. They
seemed to stand out so that he could see them. He thought his path
straight, it was really curved; nor did he know that he staggered
as he walked.</p>
<p>Presently a white object appeared ahead; and on coming to it, he
found it was a wall, white as snow, with some kind of crystal. He
touched it, when the wall fell immediately, with a crushing sound
as if pulverised, and disappeared in a vast cavern at his feet.
Beyond this chasm he came to more walls like those of houses, such
as would be left if the roofs fell in. He carefully avoided
touching them, for they seemed as brittle as glass, and merely a
white powder having no consistency at all. As he advanced these
remnants of buildings increased in number, so that he had to wind
in and out round them. In some places the crystallized wall had
fallen of itself, and he could see down into the cavern; for the
house had either been built partly underground, or, which was more
probable, the ground had risen. Whether the walls had been of
bricks or stone or other material he could not tell; they were now
like salt.</p>
<p>Soon wearying of winding round these walls, Felix returned and
retraced his steps till he was outside the place, and then went on
towards the left. Not long after, as he still walked in a dream and
without feeling his feet, he descended a slight slope and found the
ground change in colour from black to a dull red. In his dazed
state he had taken several steps into this red before he noticed
that it was liquid, unctuous and slimy, like a thick oil. It
deepened rapidly and was already over his shoes; he returned to the
black shore and stood looking out over the water, if such it could
be called.</p>
<p>The luminous yellow vapour had now risen a height of ten or
fifteen feet, and formed a roof both over the land and over the red
water, under which it was possible to see for a great distance. The
surface of the red oil or viscid liquid was perfectly smooth, and,
indeed, it did not seem as if any wind could rouse a wave on it,
much less that a swell should be left after the gale had gone down.
Disappointed in his search for water to drink, Felix mechanically
turned to go back.</p>
<p>He followed his luminous footmarks, which he could see a long
way before him. His trail curved so much that he made many short
cuts across the winding line he had left. His weariness was now so
intense that all feeling had departed. His feet, his limbs, his
arms, and hands were numbed. The subtle poison of the emanations
from the earth had begun to deaden his nerves. It seemed a full
hour or more to him till he reached the spot where the skeletons
were drawn in white upon the ground.</p>
<p>He passed a few yards to one side of them, and stumbled over a
heap of something which he did not observe, as it was black like
the level ground. It emitted a metallic sound, and looking he saw
that he had kicked his foot against a great heap of money. The
coins were black as ink; he picked up a handful and went on.
Hitherto Felix had accepted all that he saw as something so strange
as to be unaccountable. During his advance into this region in the
canoe he had in fact become slowly stupefied by the poisonous
vapour he had inhaled. His mind was partly in abeyance; it acted,
but only after some time had elapsed. He now at last began to
realize his position; the finding of the heap of blackened money
touched a chord of memory. These skeletons were the miserable
relics of men who had ventured, in search of ancient treasures,
into the deadly marshes over the site of the mightiest city of
former days. The deserted and utterly extinct city of London was
under his feet.</p>
<p>He had penetrated into the midst of that dreadful place, of
which he had heard many a tradition: how the earth was poison, the
water poison, the air poison, the very light of heaven, falling
through such an atmosphere, poison. There were said to be places
where the earth was on fire and belched forth sulphurous fumes,
supposed to be from the combustion of the enormous stores of
strange and unknown chemicals collected by the wonderful people of
those times. Upon the surface of the water there was a
greenish-yellow oil, to touch which was death to any creature; it
was the very essence of corruption. Sometimes it floated before the
wind, and fragments became attached to reeds or flags far from the
place itself. If a moorhen or duck chanced to rub the reed, and but
one drop stuck to its feathers, it forthwith died. Of the red water
he had not heard, nor of the black, into which he had unwittingly
sailed.</p>
<p>Ghastly beings haunted the site of so many crimes, shapeless
monsters, hovering by night, and weaving a fearful dance.
Frequently they caught fire, as it seemed, and burned as they flew
or floated in the air. Remembering these stories, which in part, at
least, now seemed to be true, Felix glanced aside, where the cloud
still kept pace with him, and involuntarily put his hands to his
ears lest the darkness of the air should whisper some horror of old
times. The earth on which he walked, the black earth, leaving
phosphoric footmarks behind him, was composed of the mouldered
bodies of millions of men who had passed away in the centuries
during which the city existed. He shuddered as he moved; he
hastened, yet could not go fast, his numbed limbs would not permit
him.</p>
<p>He dreaded lest he should fall and sleep, and wake no more, like
the searchers after treasure; treasure which they had found only to
lose for ever. He looked around, supposing that he might see the
gleaming head and shoulders of the half-buried giant, of which he
recollected he had been told. The giant was punished for some crime
by being buried to the chest in the earth; fire incessantly
consumed his head and played about it, yet it was not destroyed.
The learned thought, if such a thing really existed, that it must
be the upper part of an ancient brazen statue, kept bright by the
action of acid in the atmosphere, and shining with reflected light.
Felix did not see it, and shortly afterwards surmounted the hill,
and looked down upon his canoe. It was on fire!</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-24" id="Chap2-24"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXIV<br/> FIERY VAPOURS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix tried to run, but his feet would not rise from the ground;
his limbs were numb as in a nightmare; he could not get there. His
body would not obey his will. In reality he did move, but more
slowly than when he walked. By degrees approaching the canoe his
alarm subsided, for although it burned it was not injured; the
canvas of the sail was not even scorched. When he got to it the
flames had disappeared; like Jack-o'-the-lantern, the phosphoric
fire receded from him. With all his strength he strove to launch
her, yet paused, for over the surface of the black water, now
smooth and waveless, played immense curling flames, stretching out
like endless serpents, weaving, winding, rolling over each other.
Suddenly they contracted into a ball, which shone with a steady
light, and was as large as the full moon. The ball swept along,
rose a little, and from it flew out long streamers till it was
unwound in fiery threads.</p>
<p>But remembering that the flames had not even scorched the
canvas, he pushed the canoe afloat, determined at any risk to leave
this dreadful place. To his joy he felt a faint air rising; it
cooled his forehead, but was not enough to fill the sail. He
paddled with all the strength he had left. The air seemed to come
from exactly the opposite direction to what it had previously
blown, some point of east he supposed. Labour as hard as he would,
the canoe moved slowly, being so heavy. It seemed as if the black
water was thick and clung to her, retarding motion. Still, he did
move, and in time (it seemed, indeed, a time) he left the island,
which disappeared in the luminous vapours. Uncertain as to the
direction, he got his compass, but it would not act; the needle had
no life, it swung and came to rest, pointing any way as it chanced.
It was demagnetized. Felix resolved to trust to the wind, which he
was certain blew from the opposite quarter, and would therefore
carry him out. The stars he could not see for the vapour, which
formed a roof above him.</p>
<p>The wind was rising, but in uncertain gusts; however, he hoisted
the sail, and floated slowly before it. Nothing but excitement
could have kept him awake. Reclining in the canoe, he watched the
serpent-like flames playing over the surface, and forced himself by
sheer power of will not to sleep. The two dark clouds which had
accompanied him to the shore now faded away, and the cooling wind
enabled him to bear up better against his parching thirst. His hope
was to reach the clear and beautiful Lake; his dread that in the
uncertain light he might strike a concealed sandbank and become
firmly fixed.</p>
<p>Twice he passed islands, distinguishable as masses of visible
darkness. While the twisted flames played up to the shore, and the
luminous vapour overhung the ground, the island itself appeared as
a black mass. The wind became by degrees steadier, and the canoe
shot swiftly over the water. His hopes rose; he sat up and kept a
keener look-out ahead. All at once the canoe shook as if she had
struck a rock. She vibrated from one end to the other, and stopped
for a moment in her course. Felix sprang up alarmed. At the same
instant a bellowing noise reached him, succeeded by a frightful
belching and roaring, as if a volcano had burst forth under the
surface of the water; he looked back but could see nothing. The
canoe had not touched ground; she sailed as rapidly as before.</p>
<p>Again the shock, and again the hideous roaring, as if some force
beneath the water were forcing itself up, vast bubbles rising and
turning. Fortunately it was at a great distance. Hardly was it
silent before it was reiterated for the third time. Next Felix felt
the canoe heave up, and he was aware that a large roller had passed
under him. A second and a third followed. They were without crests,
and were not raised by the wind; they obviously started from the
scene of the disturbance. Soon afterwards the canoe moved quicker,
and he detected a strong current setting in the direction he was
sailing.</p>
<p>The noise did not recur, nor did any more rollers pass under.
Felix felt better and less dazed, but his weariness and sleepiness
increased every moment. He fancied that the serpent flames were
less brilliant and farther apart, and that the luminous vapour was
thinner. How long he sat at the rudder he could not tell; he
noticed that it seemed to grow darker, the serpent flames faded
away, and the luminous vapour was succeeded by something like the
natural gloom of night. At last he saw a star overhead, and hailed
it with joy. He thought of Aurora; the next instant he fell back in
the canoe firm asleep.</p>
<p>His arm, however, still retained the rudder-paddle in position,
so that the canoe sped on with equal swiftness. She would have
struck more than one of the sandbanks and islets had it not been
for the strong current that was running. Instead of carrying her
against the banks this warded her off, for it drew her between the
islets in the channels where it ran fastest, and the undertow,
where it struck the shore, bore her back from the land. Driving
before the wind, the canoe swept onward steadily to the west. In an
hour it had passed the line of the black water, and entered the
sweet Lake. Another hour and all trace of the marshes had utterly
disappeared, the last faint glow of the vapour had vanished. The
dawn of the coming summer's day appeared, and the sky became a
lovely azure. The canoe sailed on, but Felix remained immovable in
slumber.</p>
<p>Long since the strong current had ceased, it scarcely extended
into the sweet waters, and the wind only impelled the canoe. As the
sun rose the breeze gradually fell away, and in an hour or so there
was only a light air. The canoe had left most of the islets and was
approaching the open Lake when, as she passed almost the last, the
yard caught the overhanging branch of a willow, the canoe swung
round and grounded gently under the shadow of the tree. For some
time the little wavelets beat against the side of the boat;
gradually they ceased, and the clear and beautiful water became
still. Felix slept till nearly noon, when he awoke and sat up. At
the sudden movement a pike struck, and two moorhens scuttled out of
the water into the grass on the shore. A thrush was singing
sweetly, whitethroats were busy in the bushes, and swallows swept
by overhead.</p>
<p>Felix drew a long deep breath of intense relief; it was like
awakening in Paradise. He snatched up a cup, dipped, and satisfied
his craving thirst, then washed his hands over the side, and threw
the water over his face. But when he came to stand up and move, he
found that his limbs were almost powerless. Like a child he
tottered, his joints had no strength, his legs tingled as if they
had been benumbed. He was so weak he crawled on all fours along to
the mast, furled the sail kneeling, and dragged himself rather than
stepped ashore with the painter. The instant he had fastened the
rope to a branch, he threw himself at full length on the grass, and
grasped a handful of it. Merely to touch the grass after such an
experience was intense delight.</p>
<p>The song of the thrush, the chatter of the whitethroats, the
sight of a hedge-sparrow, gave him inexpressible pleasure. Lying on
the sward he watched the curves traced by the swallows in the sky.
From the sedges came the curious cry of the moorhen; a bright
kingfisher went by. He rested as he had never rested before. His
whole body, his whole being was resigned to rest. It was fully two
hours before he rose and crept on all fours into the canoe for
food. There was only sufficient left for one meal, but that gave
him no concern now he was out of the marshes; he could fish and use
his crossbow.</p>
<p>He now observed what had escaped him during the night, the canoe
was black from end to end. Stem, stern, gunwale, thwart, outrigger,
mast and sail were black. The stain did not come off on being
touched, it seemed burnt in. As he leaned over the side to dip
water, and saw his reflection, he started; his face was black, his
clothes were black, his hair black. In his eagerness to drink, the
first time, he had noticed nothing. His hands were less dark;
contact with the paddle and ropes had partly rubbed it off, he
supposed. He washed, but the water did not materially diminish the
discoloration.</p>
<p>After eating, he returned to the grass and rested again; and it
was not till the sun was sinking that he felt any return of vigour.
Still weak, but able now to walk, leaning on a stick, he began to
make a camp for the coming night. But a few scraps, the remnant of
his former meal, were left; on these he supped after a fashion, and
long before the white owl began his rounds Felix was fast asleep on
his hunter's hide from the canoe. He found next morning that the
island was small, only a few acres; it was well-wooded, dry, and
sandy in places. He had little inclination or strength to resume
his expedition; he erected a booth of branches, and resolved to
stay a few days till his strength returned.</p>
<p>By shooting wildfowl, and fishing, he fared very well, and soon
recovered. In two days the discoloration of the skin had faded to
an olive tint, which, too, grew fainter. The canoe lost its
blackness, and became a rusty colour. By rubbing the coins he had
carried away he found they were gold; part of the inscription
remained, but he could not read it. The blue china-tile was less
injured than the metal; after washing it, it was bright. But the
diamond pleased him most; it would be a splendid present for
Aurora. Never had he seen anything like it in the palaces; he
believe it was twice the size of the largest possessed by any king
or prince.</p>
<p>It was as big as his finger-nail, and shone and gleamed in the
sunlight, sparkling and reflecting the beams. Its value must be
very great. But well he knew how dangerous it would be to exhibit
it; on some pretext or other he would be thrown into prison, and
the gem seized. It must be hidden with the greatest care till he
could produce it in Thyma Castle, when the Baron would protect it.
Felix regretted now that he had not searched further; perhaps he
might have found other treasures for Aurora; the next instant he
repudiated his greed, and was only thankful that he had escaped
with his life. He wondered and marvelled that he had done so, it
was so well known that almost all who had ventured in had
perished.</p>
<p>Reflecting on the circumstances which had accompanied his
entrance to the marshes, the migration of the birds seemed almost
the most singular. They were evidently flying from some apprehended
danger, and that most probably would be in the air. The gale at
that time, however, was blowing in a direction which would appear
to ensure safety to them; into, and not out of, the poisonous
marshes. Did they, then, foresee that it would change? Did they
expect it to veer like a cyclone and presently blow east with the
same vigour as it then blew west? That would carry the vapour from
the inky waters out over the sweet Lake, and might even cause the
foul water itself to temporarily encroach on the sweet. The more he
thought of it, the more he felt convinced that this was the
explanation; and, as a fact, the wind, after dropping, did arise
again and blow from the east, though, as it happened, not with
nearly the same strength. It fell, too, before long, fortunately
for him. Clearly the birds had anticipated a cyclone, and that the
wind turning would carry the gases out upon them to their
destruction. They had therefore hurried away, and the fishes had
done the same.</p>
<p>The velocity of the gale which had carried him into the black
waters had proved his safety, by driving before it the thicker and
most poisonous portion of the vapour, compressing it towards the
east, so that he had entered the dreaded precincts under favourable
conditions. When it dropped, while he was on the black island, he
soon began to feel the effect of the gases rising imperceptibly
from the soil, and had he not had the good fortune to escape so
soon, no doubt he would have fallen a victim. He could not
congratulate himself sufficiently upon his good fortune. The other
circumstances appeared to be due to the decay of the ancient city,
to the decomposition of accumulated matter, to phosphorescence and
gaseous exhalations. The black rocks that crumbled at a touch were
doubtless the remains of ancient buildings saturated with the dark
water and vapours. Inland similar remains were white, and resembled
salt.</p>
<p>But the great explosions which occurred as he was leaving, and
which sent heavy rollers after him, were not easily understood,
till he remembered that in Sylvester's "Book of Natural Things" it
was related that "the ancient city had been undermined with vast
conduits, sewers, and tunnels, and that these communicated with the
sea". It had been much disputed whether the sea did or did not
still send its tides up to the site of the old quays. Felix now
thought that the explosions were due to compressed air, or more
probably to gases met with by the ascending tide.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-25" id="Chap2-25"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXV<br/> THE SHEPHERDS</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>For four days Felix remained on the island recovering his
strength. By degrees the memory of the scenes he had witnessed grew
less vivid, and his nerves regained their tone. The fifth morning
he sailed again, making due south with a gentle breeze from the
west, which suited the canoe very well. He considered that he was
now at the eastern extremity of the Lake, and that by sailing south
he should presently reach the place where the shore turned to the
east again. The sharp prow of the canoe cut swiftly through the
waves, a light spray flew occasionally in his face, and the wind
blew pleasantly. In the cloudless sky swallows and swifts were
wheeling, and on the water half a dozen mallards moved aside to let
him pass.</p>
<p>About two hours after he started he encountered a mist, which
came softly over the surface of the water with the wind, and in an
instant shut out all view. Even the sun was scarcely visible. It
was very warm, and left no moisture. In five minutes he passed
through and emerged again in the bright sunlight. These dry, warm
mists are frequently seen on the Lake in summer, and are believed
to portend a continuance of fine weather.</p>
<p>Felix kept a good distance from the mainland, which was hilly
and wooded, and with few islands. Presently he observed in the
extreme distance, on his right hand, a line of mountainous hills,
which he supposed to be the southern shore of the Lake, and that he
was sailing into a gulf or bay. He debated with himself whether he
should alter his course and work across to the mountains, or to
continue to trace the shore. Unless he did trace the shore, he
could scarcely say that he had circumnavigated the Lake, as he
would leave this great bay unexplored. He continued, therefore, to
sail directly south.</p>
<p>The wind freshened towards noon, and the canoe flew at a great
pace. Twice he passed through similar mists. There were now no
islands at all, but a line of low chalk cliffs marked the shore.
Considering that it must be deep, and safe to do so, Felix bore in
closer to look at the land. Woods ran along the hills right to the
verge of the cliff, but he saw no signs of inhabitants, no smoke,
boat, or house. The sound of the surf beating on the beach was
audible, though the waves were not large. High over the cliff he
noted a kite soaring, with forked tail, at a great height.</p>
<p>Immediately afterwards he ran into another mist or vapour,
thicker, if anything, and which quite obscured his view. It seemed
like a great cloud on the surface of the water, and broader than
those he had previously entered. Suddenly the canoe stopped with a
tremendous jerk, which pitched him forward on his knees, the mast
cracked, and there was a noise of splitting wood. As soon as he
could get up, Felix saw, to his bitter sorrow, that the canoe had
split longitudinally; the water came up through the split, and the
boat was held together only by the beams of the outrigger. He had
run aground on a large sharp flint embedded in a chalk floor, which
had split the poplar wood of the canoe like an axe. The voyage was
over, for the least strain would cause the canoe to part in two,
and if she were washed off the ground she would be water-logged. In
half a minute the mist passed, leaving him in the bright day,
shipwrecked.</p>
<p>Felix now saw that the waters were white with suspended chalk,
and sounding with the paddle, found that the depth was but a few
inches. He had driven at full speed on a reef. There was no danger,
for the distance to the shore was hardly two hundred yards, and
judging by the appearance of the water, it was shallow all the way.
But his canoe, the product of so much labour, and in which he had
voyaged so far, his canoe was destroyed. He could not repair her;
he doubted whether it could have been done successfully even at
home with Oliver to help him. He could sail no farther; there was
nothing for it but to get ashore and travel on foot. If the wind
rose higher, the waves would soon break clean over her, and she
would go to pieces.</p>
<p>With a heavy heart, Felix took his paddle and stepped overboard.
Feeling with the paddle, he plumbed the depth in front of him, and,
as he expected, walked all the way to the shore, no deeper than his
knees. This was fortunate, as it enabled him to convey his things
to land without loss. He wrapped up the tools and manuscripts in
one of his hunter's hides. When the whole cargo was landed, he sat
down sorrowfully at the foot of the cliff, and looked out at the
broken mast and sail, still flapping uselessly in the breeze.</p>
<p>It was a long time before he recovered himself, and set to work
mechanically to bury the crossbow, hunter's hides, tools, and
manuscripts, under a heap of pebbles. As the cliff, though low, was
perpendicular, he could not scale it, else he would have preferred
to conceal them in the woods above. To pile pebbles over them was
the best he could do for the present; he intended to return for
them when he discovered a path up the cliff. He then started,
taking only his bow and arrows.</p>
<p>But no such path was to be found; he walked on and on till
weary, and still the cliff ran like a wall on his left hand. After
an hour's rest, he started again; and, as the sun was declining,
came suddenly to a gap in the cliff, where a grassy sward came down
to the shore. It was now too late, and he was too weary, to think
of returning for his things that evening. He made a scanty meal,
and endeavoured to rest. But the excitement of losing the canoe,
the long march since, the lack of good food, all tended to render
him restless. Weary, he could not rest, nor move farther. The time
passed slowly, the sun sank, the wind ceased; after an interminable
time the stars appeared, and still he could not sleep. He had
chosen a spot under an oak on the green slope. The night was warm,
and even sultry, so that he did not miss his covering, but there
was no rest in him. Towards the dawn, which comes very early at
that season, he at last slept, with his back to the tree. He awoke
with a start in broad daylight, to see a man standing in front of
him armed with a long spear.</p>
<p>Felix sprang to his feet, instinctively feeling for his
hunting-knife; but he saw in an instant that no injury was meant,
for the man was leaning on the shaft of his weapon, and, of course,
could, if so he had wished, have run him through while sleeping.
They looked at each other for a moment. The stranger was clad in a
tunic, and wore a hat of plaited straw. He was very tall and
strongly built; his single weapon, a spear of twice his own length.
His beard came down on his chest. He spoke to Felix in a dialect
the latter did not understand. Felix held out his hand as a token
of amity, which the other took. He spoke again. Felix, on his part,
tried to explain his shipwreck, when a word the stranger uttered
recalled to Felix's memory the peculiar dialect used by the
shepherd race on the hills in the neighbourhood of his home.</p>
<p>He spoke in this dialect, which the stranger in part at least
understood, and the sound of which at once rendered him more
friendly. By degrees they comprehended each other's meaning the
easier, as the shepherd had come the same way and had seen the
wreck of the canoe. Felix learned that the shepherd was a scout
sent on ahead to see that the road was clear of enemies. His tribe
were on the march with their flocks, and to avoid the steep woods
and hills which there blocked their course, they had followed the
level and open beach at the foot of the cliff, aware, of course, of
the gap which Felix had found. While they were talking, Felix saw
the cloud of dust raised by the sheep as the flocks wound round a
jutting buttress of cliff.</p>
<p>His friend explained that they marched in the night and early
morning to avoid the heat of the day. Their proposed halting-place
was close at hand; he must go on and see that all was clear. Felix
accompanied him, and found within the wood at the summit a grassy
coombe, where a spring rose. The shepherd threw down his spear, and
began to dam up the channel of the spring with stones, flints, and
sods of earth, in order to form a pool at which the sheep might
drink. Felix assisted him, and the water speedily began to
rise.</p>
<p>The flocks were not allowed to rush tumultuously to the water;
they came in about fifty at a time, each division with its
shepherds and their dogs, so that confusion was avoided and all had
their share. There were about twenty of these divisions, besides
eighty cows and a few goats. They had no horses; their baggage came
on the backs of asses.</p>
<p>After the whole of the flocks and herds had been watered several
fires were lit by the women, who in stature and hardihood scarcely
differed from the men. Not till this work was over did the others
gather about Felix to hear his story. Finding that he was hungry
they ran to the baggage for food, and pressed on him a little dark
bread, plentiful cheese and butter, dried tongue, and horns of
mead. He could not devour a fiftieth part of what these hospitable
people brought him. Having nothing else to give them, he took from
his pocket one of the gold coins he had brought from the site of
the ancient city, and offered it.</p>
<p>They laughed, and made him understand that it was of no value to
them; but they passed it from hand to hand, and he noticed that
they began to look at him curiously. From its blackened appearance
they conjectured whence he had obtained it; one, too, pointed to
his shoes, which were still blackened, and appeared to have been
scorched. The whole camp now pressed on him, their wonder and
interest rising to a great height. With some trouble Felix
described his journey over the site of the ancient city,
interrupted with constant exclamations, questions, and excited
conversation. He told them everything, except about the
diamond.</p>
<p>Their manner towards him perceptibly altered. From the first
they had been hospitable; they now became respectful, and even
reverent. The elders and their chief, not to be distinguished by
dress or ornament from the rest, treated him with ceremony and
marked deference. The children were brought to see and even to
touch him. So great was their amazement that any one should have
escaped from these pestilential vapours, that they attributed it to
divine interposition, and looked upon him with some of the awe of
superstition. He was asked to stay with them altogether, and to
take command of the tribe.</p>
<p>The latter Felix declined; to stay with them for awhile, at
least, he was, of course, willing enough. He mentioned his hidden
possessions, and got up to return for them, but they would not
permit him. Two men started at once. He gave them the bearings of
the spot, and they had not the least doubt but that they should
find it, especially as, the wind being still, the canoe would not
yet have broken up, and would guide them. The tribe remained in the
green coombe the whole day, resting from their long journey. They
wearied Felix with questions, still he answered them as copiously
as he could; he felt too grateful for their kindness not to satisfy
them. His bow was handled, his arrows carried about so that the
quiver for the time was empty, and the arrows scattered in twenty
hands. He astonished them by exhibiting his skill with the weapon,
striking a tree with an arrow at nearly three hundred yards.</p>
<p>Though familiar, of course, with the bow, they had never seen
shooting like that, nor, indeed, any archery except at short
quarters. They had no other arms themselves but spears and knives.
Seeing one of the women cutting the boughs from a fallen tree, dead
and dry, and, therefore, preferable for fuel, Felix naturally went
to help her, and, taking the axe, soon made a bundle, which he
carried for her. It was his duty as a noble to see than no woman,
not a slave, laboured; he had been bred in that idea, and would
have felt disgraced had he permitted it. The women looked on with
astonishment, for in these rude tribes the labour of the women was
considered valuable and appraised like that of a horse.</p>
<p>Without any conscious design, Felix thus in one day conciliated
and won the regard of the two most powerful parties in the camp,
the chief and the women. By his refusing the command the chief was
flattered, and his possible hostility prevented. The act of cutting
the wood and carrying the bundle gave him the hearts of the women.
They did not, indeed, think their labour in any degree oppressive;
still, to be relieved of it was pleasing.</p>
<p>The two men who had gone for Felix's buried treasure did not
return till breakfast next morning. They stepped into the camp,
each with his spear reddened and dripping with fresh blood. Felix
no sooner saw the blood than he fainted. He quickly recovered, but
he could not endure the sight of the spears, which were removed and
hidden from his view. He had seen blood enough spilt at the siege
of Iwis, but this came upon him in all its horror unrelieved by the
excitement of war.</p>
<p>The two shepherds had been dogged by gipsies, and had been
obliged to make a round to escape. They took their revenge by
climbing into trees, and as their pursuers passed under thrust them
through with their long spears. The shepherds, like all their
related tribes, had been at feud with the gipsies for many
generations. The gipsies followed them to and from their pastures,
cut off stragglers, destroyed or stole their sheep and cattle, and
now and then overwhelmed a while tribe. Of late the contest had
become more sanguinary and almost ceaseless.</p>
<p>Mounted on swift, though small, horses, the gipsies had the
advantage of the shepherds. On the other hand, the shepherds, being
men of great stature and strength, could not be carried away by a
rush if they had time to form a circle, as was their custom of
battle. They lost many men by the javelins thrown by the gipsies,
who rode up to the edge of the circle, cast their darts, and
retreated. If the shepherds left their circle they were easily
ridden over; while they maintained formation they lost individuals,
but saved the mass. Battles were of rare occurrence; the gipsies
watched for opportunities and executed raids, the shepherds
retaliated, and thus the endless war continued. The shepherds
invariably posted sentinels, and sent forward scouts to ascertain
if the way were clear. Accustomed to the horrid scenes of war from
childhood, they could not understand Felix's sensitiveness.</p>
<p>They laughed, and then petted him like a spoilt child. This
galled him exceedingly; he felt humiliated, and eager to reassert
his manhood. He was willing to stay with them there for awhile,
nothing would have induced him to leave them now till he had
vindicated himself in their sight. The incident happened soon after
sunrise, which is very early at the end of June. The camp had only
waited for the return of these men, and on their appearance began
to move. The march that morning was not a long one, as the sky was
clear and the heat soon wearied the flocks. Felix accompanied the
scout in advance, armed with his bow, eager to encounter the
gipsies.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-26" id="Chap2-26"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXVI<br/> BOW AND ARROW</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Three mornings the shepherds marched in the same manner, when
they came in view of a range of hills so high that to Felix they
appeared mountains. The home of the tribe was in these hills, and
once there they were comparatively safe from attack. In early
spring when the herbage on the downs was scarce, the flocks moved
to the meadowlike lands far in the valleys; in summer they returned
to the hills; in autumn they went to the vales again. Soon after
noon on the third day the scouts reported that a large body of
gipsies were moving in a direction which would cut off their course
to the hills on the morrow.</p>
<p>The chief held a council, and it was determined that a forced
march should be made at once by another route, more to the left,
and it was thought that in this way they might reach the base of
the slopes by evening. The distance was not great, and could easily
have been traversed by the men; the flocks and herds, however,
could not be hurried much. A messenger was despatched to the hills
for assistance, and the march began. It was a tedious movement.
Felix was wearied, and walked in a drowsy state. Towards six
o'clock, as he guessed, the trees began to thin, and the column
reached the first slopes of the hills. Here about thirty shepherds
joined them, a contingent from the nearest camp. It was considered
that the danger was now past, and that the gipsies would not attack
them on the hill; but it was a mistake.</p>
<p>A large body almost immediately appeared, coming along the slope
on the right, not less than two hundred; and from their open
movements and numbers it was evident that they intended battle. The
flocks and herds were driven hastily into a coombe, or narrow
valley, and there left to their fate. All the armed men formed in a
circle; the women occupied the centre. Felix took his stand outside
the circle by a gnarled and decayed oak. There was just there a
slight rise in the ground, which he knew would give him some
advantage in discharging his arrows, and would also allow him a
clear view. His friends earnestly entreated him to enter the
circle, and even sought to bring him within it by force, till he
explained to them that he could not shoot if so surrounded, and
promised if the gipsies charged to rush inside.</p>
<p>Felix unslung his quiver, and placed it on the ground before
him; a second quiver he put beside it; four or five arrows he stuck
upright in the sward, so that he could catch hold of them quickly;
two arrows he held in his left hand, another he fitted to the
string. Thus prepared, he watched the gipsies advance. They came
walking their short wiry horses to within half a mile, when they
began to trot down the slope; they could not surround the shepherds
because of the steep-sided coombe and some brushwood, and could
advance only on two fronts. Felix rapidly became so excited that
his sight was affected, and his head whirled. His heart beat with
such speed that his breath seemed going. His limbs tottered, and he
dreaded lest he should faint.</p>
<p>His intensely nervous organization, strung up to its highest
pitch, shook him in its grasp, and his will was powerless to
control it. He felt that he should disgrace himself once more
before these rugged but brave shepherds, who betrayed not the
slightest symptom of agitation. For one hour of Oliver's calm
courage and utter absence of nervousness he would have given years
of his life. His friends in the circle observed his agitation, and
renewed their entreaties to him to come inside it. This only was
needed to complete his discomfiture. He lost his head altogether;
he saw nothing but a confused mass of yellow and red rushing
towards him, for each of the gipsies wore a yellow or red scarf,
some about the body, some over the shoulder, others round the head.
They were now within three hundred yards.</p>
<p>A murmur from the shepherd spearmen. Felix had discharged an
arrow. It stuck in the ground about twenty paces from him. He shot
again; it flew wild and quivering, and dropped harmlessly. Another
murmur; they expressed to each other their contempt for the bow.
This immediately restored Felix; he forgot the enemy as an enemy,
he forgot himself; he thought only of his skill as an archer, now
in question. Pride upheld him. The third arrow he fitted properly
to the string, he planted his left foot slightly in advance, and
looked steadfastly at the horsemen before he drew his bow.</p>
<p>At a distance of one hundred and fifty yards they had paused,
and were widening out so as to advance in loose open rank and allow
each man to throw his javelin. They shouted; the spearmen in the
circle replied, and levelled their spears. Felix fixed his eye on
one of the gipsies who was ordering and marshalling the rest, a
chief. He drew the arrow swiftly but quietly, the string hummed,
the pliant yew obeyed, and the long arrow shot forward in a steady
swift flight like a line of gossamer drawn through the air. It
missed the chief, but pierced the horse he rode just in front of
the rider's thigh. The maddened horse reared and fell backwards on
his rider.</p>
<p>The spearmen shouted. Before the sound could leave their lips
another arrow had sped; a gipsy threw up his arms with a shriek;
the arrow had gone through his body. A third, a fourth, a
fifth—six gipsies rolled on the sward. Shout upon shout rent
the air from the spearmen. Utterly unused to this mode of fighting,
the gipsies fell back. Still the fatal arrows pursued them, and ere
they were out of range three others fell. Now the rage of battle
burned in Felix; his eyes gleamed, his lips were open, his nostrils
wide like a horse running a race. He shouted to the spearmen to
follow him, and snatching up his quiver ran forward. Gathered
together in a group, the gipsy band consulted.</p>
<p>Felix ran at full speed; swift of foot, he left the heavy
spearmen behind. Alone he approached the horsemen; all the Aquila
courage was up within him. He kept the higher ground as he ran, and
stopped suddenly on a little knoll or tumulus. His arrow flew, a
gipsy fell. Again, and a third. Their anger gave them fresh
courage; to be repulsed by one only! Twenty of them started to
charge and run him down. The keen arrows flew faster than their
horses' feet. Now the horse and now the man met those sharp points.
Six fell; the rest returned. The shepherds came running; Felix
ordered them to charge the gipsies. His success gave him authority;
they obeyed; and as they charged, he shot nine more arrows; nine
more deadly wounds. Suddenly the gipsy band turned and fled into
the brushwood on the lower slopes.</p>
<p>Breathless, Felix sat down on the knoll, and the spearmen
swarmed around him. Hardly had they begun to speak to him than
there was a shout, and they saw a body of shepherds descending the
hill. There were three hundred of them; warned by the messenger,
the whole country had risen to repel the gipsies. Too late to join
in the fight, they had seen the last of it. They examined the
field. There were ten dead and six wounded, who were taken
prisoners; the rest escaped, though hurt. In many cases the arrow
had gone clean through the body. Then, for the first time, they
understood the immense power of the yew bow in strong and skilful
hands.</p>
<p>Felix was overwhelmed; they almost crushed him with their
attentions; the women fell at his feet and kissed them. But the
archer could scarcely reply; his intense nervous excitement had
left him weak and almost faint; his one idea was to rest. As he
walked back to the camp between the chiefs of the shepherd
spearmen, his eyes closed, his limbs tottered, and they had to
support him. At the camp he threw himself on the sward, under the
gnarled oak, and was instantly fast asleep. Immediately the camp
was stilled, not to disturb him.</p>
<p>His adventures in the marshes of the buried city, his canoe, his
archery, were talked of the livelong night. Next morning the camp
set out for their home in the mountains, and he was escorted by
nearly four hundred spearmen. They had saved for him the ornaments
of the gipsies who had fallen, golden earrings and nose-rings. He
gave them to the women, except one, a finger-ring, set with
turquoise, and evidently of ancient make, which he kept for Aurora.
Two marches brought them to the home of the tribe, where the rest
of the spearmen left them. The place was called Wolfstead.</p>
<p>Felix saw at once how easily this spot might be fortified. There
was a deep and narrow valley like a groove or green trench opening
to the south. At the upper end of the valley rose a hill, not very
high, but steep, narrow at the ridge, and steep again on the other
side. Over it was a broad, wooded, and beautiful vale; beyond that
again the higher mountains. Towards the foot of the narrow ridge
here, there was a succession of chalk cliffs, so that to climb up
on that side in the face of opposition would be extremely
difficult. In the gorge of the enclosed narrow valley a spring
rose. The shepherds had formed eight pools, one after the other,
water being of great importance to them; and farther down, where
the valley opened, there were forty or fifty acres of irrigated
meadow. The spring then ran into a considerable brook, across which
was the forest.</p>
<p>Felix's idea was to run a palisade along the margin of the
brook, and up both sides of the valley to the ridge. There he would
build a fort. The edges of the chalk cliffs he would connect with a
palisade or a wall, and so form a complete enclosure. He mentioned
his scheme to the shepherds; they did not greatly care for it, as
they had always been secure without it, the rugged nature of the
country not permitting horsemen to penetrate. But they were so
completely under his influence that to please him they set about
the work. He had to show them how to make a palisade; they had
never seen one, and he made the first part of it himself. At
building a wall with loose stones, without mortar, the shepherds
were skilful; the wall along the verge of the cliffs was soon up,
and so was the fort on the top of the ridge. The fort consisted
merely of a circular wall, breast high, with embrasures or
crenellations.</p>
<p>When this was finished, Felix had a sense of mastership, for in
this fort he felt as if he could rule the whole country. From day
to day shepherds came from the more distant parts to see the famous
archer, and to admire the enclosure. Though the idea of it had
never occurred to them, now they saw it they fully understood its
advantages, and two other chiefs began to erect similar forts and
palisades.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-27" id="Chap2-27"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXVII<br/> SURPRISED</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span> <br/>
<p>Felix was now anxious to continue his journey, yet he did not
like to leave the shepherds, with whom his life was so pleasant. As
usual, when deliberating, he wandered about the hills, and then
into the forest. The shepherds at first insisted on at least two of
their number accompanying him; they were fearful lest the gipsies
should seize him, or a Bushman assassinate him. This company was
irksome to Felix. In time he convinced them that he was a much
better hunter than any of the tribe, and they permitted him to roam
alone. During one of these excursions into the forest he discovered
a beautiful lake. He looked down on the water from the summit of
one of the green mountains.</p>
<p>It was, he thought, half a mile across, and the opposite shore
was open woodland, grassy and meadow-like, and dotted with fine old
oaks. By degrees these closed together, and the forest succeeded;
beyond it again, at a distance of two miles, were green hills. A
little clearing only was wanted to make the place fit for a castle
and enclosure. Through the grass-land opposite he traced the course
of a large brook down to the lake; another entered it on the right,
and the lake gradually narrowed to a river on his left. Could he
erect a tower there, and bring Aurora to it, how happy he would be!
A more beautiful spot he had never seen, nor one more suited for
every purpose in life.</p>
<p>He followed the course of the stream which left the lake, every
now and then disturbing wild goats from the cliffs, and twice he
saw deer under the oaks across it. On rounding a spur of down he
saw that the river debouched into a much wider lake, which he
conjectured must be the Sweet Waters. He went on till he reached
the mouth of the river, and had then no doubt that he was standing
once more on the shore of the Sweet Water sea. On this, the
southern side, the banks were low; on the other, a steep chalky
cliff almost overhung the river, and jutted out into the lake,
curving somewhat towards him. A fort on that cliff would command
the entrance to the river; the cliff was a natural breakwater, so
that there was a haven at its base. The river appeared broad and
deep enough for navigation, so that vessels could pass from the
great Lake to the inland water; about six or seven miles, he
supposed.</p>
<p>Felix was much taken with this spot; the beauty of the inland
lake, the evident richness of the soil, the river communicating
with the great Lake, the cliff commanding its entrance; never, in
all his wanderings, had he seen a district so well suited for a
settlement and the founding of a city. If he had but a thousand
men! How soon he would bring Aurora there, and build a tower, and
erect a palisade! So occupied was he with the thought that he
returned the whole distance to the spot where he had made the
discovery. There he remained a long time, designing it all in his
mind.</p>
<p>The tower he would build yonder, three-quarters of a mile,
perhaps a mile, inland from the opposite shore, on a green knoll,
at the base of which the brook flowed. It would be even more
pleasant there than on the shore of the lake. The forest he would
clear back a little, and put up a stout palisade, enclosing at
least three miles of grassy land. By the shore of the lake he would
build his town, so that his vessels might be able to go forth into
the great Sweet Water sea. So strongly did imagination hold him
that he did not observe how near it was to sunset, nor did he
remark the threatening aspect of the sky. Thunder awoke him from
his dream; he looked, and saw a storm rapidly coming from the
north-east.</p>
<p>He descended the hill, and sheltered himself as well as possible
among some thick fir-trees. After the lightning, the rain poured so
heavily that it penetrated the branches, and he unstrung his bow
and placed the string in his pocket, that it might not become wet.
Instantly there was a whoop on either side, and two gipsies darted
from the undergrowth towards him. While the terrible bow was bent
they had followed him, tracking his footsteps; the moment he
unstrung the bow, they rushed out. Felix crushed through between
the firs, by main force getting through, but only opening a passage
for them to follow. They could easily have thrust their darts
through him, but their object was to take him alive, and gratify
the revenge of the tribes with torture.</p>
<p>Felix doubled from the firs, and made towards the far-distant
camp; but he was faced by three more gipsies. He turned again and
made for the steep hill he had descended. With all his strength he
raced up it; his lightness of foot carried him in advance, and he
reached the summit a hundred yards ahead; but he knew he must be
overtaken presently, unless he could hit upon some stratagem. In
the instant that he paused to breathe on the summit a thought
struck him. Like the wind he raced along the ridge, making for the
great Sweet Water, the same path he had followed in the morning.
Once on the ridge the five pursuers shouted; they knew they should
have him now there were no more hills to breast. It was not so easy
as they imagined.</p>
<p>Felix was in splendid training; he kept his lead, and even drew
a little on them. Still he knew in time he must succumb, just as
the stag, though swifter of foot, ultimately succumbs to the
hounds. They would track him till they had him. If only he could
gain enough to have time to string and bend his bow! But with all
his efforts he could not get away more than the hundred yards, and
that was not far enough. It could be traversed in ten seconds, they
would have him before he could string it and fit an arrow. If only
he had been fresh as in the morning! But he had had a long walk
during the day and not much food. He knew that his burst of speed
must soon slacken, but he had a stratagem yet.</p>
<p>Keeping along the ridge till he reached the place where the lake
narrowed to the river, suddenly he rushed down the hill towards the
water. The edge was encumbered with brushwood and fallen trees; he
scrambled over and through anyhow; he tore a path through the
bushes and plunged in. But his jacket caught in a branch; he had
his knife out and cut off the shred of cloth. Then with the bow and
knife in one hand he struck out for the opposite shore. His hope
was that the gipsies, being horsemen, and passing all their lives
on their horses, might not know how to swim. His conjecture was
right; they stopped on the brink, and yelled their loudest. When he
had passed the middle of the slow stream their rage rose to a
shriek, startling a heron far down the water.</p>
<p>Felix reached the opposite shore in safety, but the bow-string
was now wet and useless. He struck off at once straight across the
grass-lands, past the oaks he had admired, past the green knoll
where in imagination he had built his castle and brought Aurora,
through the brook, which he found was larger than it appeared at a
distance, and required two or three strokes to cross. A few more
paces and the forest sheltered him. Under the trees he rested, and
considered what course to pursue. The gipsies would expect him to
endeavour to regain his friends, and would watch to cut off his
return. Felix determined to make, instead, for another camp farther
east, and to get even there by a detour.</p>
<p>Bitterly he reproached himself for his folly in leaving the
camp, knowing that gipsies were about, with no other weapon than
the bow. The knife at his belt was practically no weapon at all,
useful only in the last extremity. Had he a short sword, or
javelin, he would have faced the two gipsies who first sprang
towards him. Worse than this was the folly of wandering without the
least precaution into a territory at that time full of gipsies, who
had every reason to desire his capture. If he had used the ordinary
precautions of woodcraft, he would have noticed their traces, and
he would not have exposed himself in full view on the ridges of the
hills, where a man was visible for miles. If he perished through
his carelessness, how bitter it would be! To lose Aurora by the
merest folly would, indeed, be humiliating.</p>
<p>He braced himself to the journey before him, and set off at a
good swinging hunter's pace, as it is called, that is, a pace
rather more than a walk and less than a run, with the limbs
somewhat bent, and long springy steps. The forest was in the worst
possible condition for movement; the rain had damped the fern and
undergrowth, and every branch showered raindrops upon him. It was
now past sunset and the dusk was increasing; this he welcomed as
hiding him. He travelled on till nearly dawn, and then, turning to
the right, swept round, and regained the line of the mountainous
hills after sunrise. There he rested, and reached a camp about nine
in the morning, having walked altogether since the preceding
morning fully fifty miles. This camp was about fifteen miles
distant from that of his friends; the shepherds knew him, and one
of them started with the news of his safety. In the afternoon ten
of his friends came over to see him, and to reproach him.</p>
<p>His weariness was so great that for three days he scarcely moved
from the hut, during which time the weather was wet and stormy, as
is often the case in summer after a thunderstorm. On the fourth
morning it was fine, and Felix, now quite restored to his usual
strength, went out with the shepherds. He found some of them
engaged in throwing up a heap of stones, flint, and chalk lumps
near an oak-tree in a plain at the foot of the hill. They told him
that during the thunderstorm two cows and ten sheep had been killed
there by lightning, which had scarcely injured the oak.</p>
<p>It was their custom to pile up a heap of stones wherever such an
event occurred, to warn others from staying themselves, or allowing
their sheep or cattle to stay, near the spot in thunder, as it was
observed that where lightning struck once it was sure to strike
again, sooner or later. "Then," said Felix, "you may be sure there
is water there!" He knew from his study of the knowledge of the
ancients that lightning frequently leaped from trees or buildings
to concealed water, but he had no intention of indicating water in
that particular spot. He meant the remark in a general sense.</p>
<p>But the shepherds, ever desirous of water, and looking on Felix
as a being of a different order to themselves, took his casual
observation in its literal sense. They brought their tools and dug,
and, as it chanced, found a copious spring. The water gushed forth
and formed a streamlet. Upon this the whole tribe gathered, and
they saluted Felix as one almost divine. It was in vain that he
endeavoured to repel this homage, and to explain the reason of his
remark, and that it was only in a general way that he intended it.
Facts were too strong for him. They had heard his words, which they
considered an inspiration, and <i>there</i> was the water. It was
no use; <i>there</i> was the spring, the very thing they most
wanted. Perforce Felix was invested with attributes beyond
nature.</p>
<p>The report spread; his own old friends came in a crowd to see
the new spring, others journeyed from afar. In a week, Felix having
meanwhile returned to Wolfstead, his fame had for the second time
spread all over the district. Some came a hundred miles to see him.
Nothing he could say was listened to; these simple, straightforward
people understood nothing but facts, and the defeat of the gipsies
and the discovery of the spring seemed to them little less than
supernatural. Besides which, in innumerable little ways Felix's
superior knowledge had told upon them. His very manners spoke of
high training. His persuasive voice won them. His constructive
skill and power of planning, as shown in the palisades and
enclosure, showed a grasp of circumstances new to them. This was a
man such as they had never before seen.</p>
<p>They began to bring him disputes to settle; he shrank from this
position of judge, but it was useless to struggle; they would wait
as long as he liked, but his decision they would have, and no
other. Next came the sick begging to be cured. Here Felix was firm;
he would not attempt to be a physician, and they went away. But,
unfortunately, it happened that he let out his knowledge of plants,
and back they came. Felix did not know what course to pursue; if by
chance he did any one good, crowds would beset him; if injury
resulted, perhaps he would be assassinated. This fear was quite
unfounded; he really had not the smallest idea of how high he stood
in their estimation.</p>
<p>After much consideration, Felix hit upon a method which would
save him from many inconveniences. He announced his intention of
forming a herb-garden in which to grow the best kind of herbs, and
at the same time said he would not administer any medicine himself,
but would tell their own native physicians and nurses all he knew,
so that they could use his knowledge. The herb-garden was at once
begun in the valley; it could not contain much till next year, and
meantime if any diseased persons came Felix saw them, expressed his
opinion to the old shepherd who was the doctor of the tribe, and
the latter carried out his instructions. Felix did succeed in
relieving some small ailments, and thereby added to his
reputation.</p>
<hr />
<SPAN name="Chap2-28" id="Chap2-28"></SPAN>
<h3>CHAPTER XXVIII<br/> FOR AURORA</h3>
<span class="backlink"><SPAN href="#Contents">Return to
Contents</SPAN></span><br/>
<p>Felix now began to find out for himself the ancient truth, that
difficulties always confront man. Success only changes them, and
increases their number. Difficulties faced him in every direction;
at home it had seemed impossible for him to do anything. Now that
success seemed to smile on him and he had become a power, instead
of everything being smooth and easy, new difficulties sprang up for
solution at every point. He wished to continue his journey, but he
feared that he would not be permitted to depart. He would have to
start away in the night, in which case he could hardly return to
them again, and yet he wished to return to these, the first friends
he had had, and amongst whom he hoped to found a city.</p>
<p>Another week slipped away, and Felix was meditating his escape,
when one afternoon a deputation of ten spearmen arrived from a
distant tribe, who had nominated him their king, and sent their
principal men to convey the intelligence. Fame is always greatest
at a distance, and this tribe in the mountains of the east had
actually chosen him as king, and declared that they would obey him
whether he took up his residence with them or not. Felix was
naturally greatly pleased; how delighted Aurora would be! but he
was in perplexity what to do, for he could not tell whether the
Wolfstead people would be favourably inclined or would resent his
selection.</p>
<p>He had not long to consider. There was an assembly of the tribe,
and they, too, chose him by common consent as their king. Secretly
they were annoyed that another tribe had been more forward than
themselves, and were anxious that Felix should not leave them.
Felix declined the honour; in spite of his refusal, he was treated
as if he were the most despotic monarch. Four days afterwards two
other tribes joined the movement, and sent their acceptance of him
as their monarch. Others followed, and so quickly now that a day
never passed without another tribe sending a deputation.</p>
<p>Felix thought deeply on the matter. He was, of course,
flattered, and ready to accept the dignity, but he was alive to
considerations of policy. He resolved that he would not use the
title, nor exercise the functions of a king as usually understood.
He explained his plan to the chiefs; it was that he should be
called simply "Leader", the Leader of the War; that he should only
assume royal authority in time of war; that the present chiefs
should retain their authority, and each govern as before, in
accordance with ancient custom. He proposed to be king only during
war-time. He would, if they liked, write out their laws for them in
a book, and so give their customs cohesion and shape. To this plan
the tribes readily agreed; it retained all the former customs, it
left the chiefs their simple patriarchal authority, and it gave all
of them the advantage of combination in war. As the Leader, Felix
was henceforth known.</p>
<p>In the course of a fortnight, upwards of six thousand men had
joined the Confederacy, and Felix wrote down the names of twenty
tribes on a sheet of parchment which he took from his chest. A hut
had long since been built for him; but he received all the
deputations, and held the assemblies which were necessary, in the
circular fort. He was so pressed to visit the tribes that he could
not refuse to go to the nearest, and thus his journey was again
postponed. During this progress from tribal camp to tribal camp,
Felix gained the adhesion of twelve more, making a total of
thirty-two names of camps, representing about eight thousand
spearmen. With pride Felix reflected that he commanded a far larger
army than the Prince of Ponze. But he was not happy.</p>
<p>Months had now elapsed since he had parted from Aurora. There
were no means of communicating with her. A letter could be conveyed
only by a special messenger; he could not get a messenger, and even
if one had been forthcoming, he could not instruct him how to reach
Thyma Castle. He did not know himself; the country was entirely
unexplored. Except that the direction was west, he had no knowledge
whatever. He had often inquired of the shepherds, but they were
perfectly ignorant. Anker's Gate was the most westerly of all their
settlements, which chiefly extended eastwards. Beyond Anker's Gate
was the trackless forest, of which none but the Bushmen knew
anything. They did not understand what he meant by a map; all they
could tell him was that the range of mountainous hills continued
westerly and southerly for an unascertained distance, and that the
country was uninhabited except by wandering gipsy tribes.</p>
<p>South was the sea, the salt water; but they never went down to
it, or near it, because there was no sustenance for their flocks
and herds. Till now, Felix did not know that he was near the sea;
he resolved at once to visit it. As nearly as he could discover,
the great fresh water Lake did not reach any farther south;
Wolfstead was not far from its southern margin. He concluded,
therefore, that the shore of the Lake must run continually
westward, and that if he followed it he should ultimately reach the
very creek from which he had started in his canoe. How far it was
he could not reckon.</p>
<p>There were none of the shepherds who could be sent with a
letter; they were not hunters, and were unused to woodcraft; there
was not one capable of the journey. Unless he went himself he could
not communicate with Aurora. Two routes were open to him; one
straight through the forest on foot, the other by water, which
latter entailed the construction of another canoe. Journey by
water, too, he had found was subject to unforeseen risks. Till he
could train some of the younger men to row a galley, he decided not
to attempt the voyage. There was but the forest route left, and
that he resolved to attempt; but when? And how, without offending
his friends?</p>
<p>Meantime, while he revolved the subject in his mind, he visited
the river and the shore of the great Lake, this time accompanied by
ten spears. The second visit only increased his admiration of the
place and his desire to take possession of it. He ascended a tall
larch, from whose boughs he had a view out over the Lake; the shore
seemed to go almost directly west. There were no islands, and no
land in sight; the water was open and clear. Next day he started
for the sea; he wished to see it for its own sake, and, secondly,
because if he could trace the trend of the shore, he would perhaps
be able to put together a mental map of the country, and so assure
himself of the right route to pursue when he started for Thyma
Castle.</p>
<p>His guides took him directly south, and in three marches (three
days) brought him to the strand. This journey was not in a straight
line; they considered it was about five-and-thirty or forty miles
to the sea, but the country was covered with almost impenetrable
forests, which compelled a circuitous path. They had also to avoid
a great ridge of hills, and to slip through a pass or river valley,
because these hills were frequently traversed by the gipsies who
were said, indeed, to travel along them for hundreds of miles.
Through the river valley, therefore, which wound between the hills,
they approached the sea, so much on a level with it that Felix did
not catch a distant glimpse.</p>
<p>In the afternoon of the third day they heard a low murmur, and
soon afterwards came out from the forest itself upon a wide bed of
shingle, thinly bordered with scattered bushes on the inland side.
Climbing over this, Felix saw the green line of the sea rise and
extend itself on either hand; in the glory of the scene he forgot
his anxieties and his hopes, they fell from him together, leaving
the mind alone with itself and love. For the memory of Aurora
rendered the beauty before him still more beautiful; love, like the
sunshine, threw a glamour over the waves. His old and highest
thoughts returned to him in all their strength. He must follow
them, he could not help himself. Standing where the foam came
nearly to his feet, the resolution to pursue his aspirations took
possession of him as strong as the sea. When he turned from it, he
said to himself, "This is the first step homewards to her; this is
the first step of my renewed labour." To fulfil his love and his
ambition was one and the same thing. He must see her, and then
again endeavour with all his abilities to make himself a position
which she could share.</p>
<p>Towards the evening, leaving his escort, he partly ascended the
nearest slope of the hills to ascertain more perfectly than was
possible at a lower level the direction in which the shore trended.
It was nearly east and west, and as the shore of the inland lake
ran west, it appeared that between them there was a broad belt of
forest. Through this he must pass, and he thought if he continued
due west he should cross an imaginary line drawn south from his own
home through Thyma Castle; then by turning to the north he should
presently reach that settlement. But when he should cross this
line, how many days' travelling it would need to reach it, was a
matter of conjecture, and he must be guided by circumstances, the
appearance of the country, and his hunter's instinct.</p>
<p>On the way back to Wolfstead Felix was occupied in considering
how he could leave his friends, and yet be able to return to them
and resume his position. His general idea was to build a fortified
house or castle at the spot which had so pleased him, and to bring
Aurora to it. He could then devote himself to increasing and
consolidating his rule over these people, and perhaps in time
organize a kingdom. But without Aurora the time it would require
would be unendurable; by some means he must bring her. The whole
day long as he walked he thought and thought, trying to discover
some means by which he could accomplish these things; yet the more
he considered the more difficult they appeared to him. There seemed
no plan that promised success; all he could do would be to risk the
attempt.</p>
<p>But two days after returning from the sea it chanced towards the
afternoon he fell asleep, and on awakening found his mind full of
ideas which he felt sure would succeed if anything would. The
question had solved itself during sleep; the mind, like a wearied
limb, strained by too much effort, had recovered its elasticity and
freshness, and he saw clearly what he ought to do.</p>
<p>He convened an assembly of the chief men of the nearest tribes,
and addressed them in the circular fort. He asked them if they
could place sufficient confidence in him to assist him in carrying
out certain plans, although he should not be able to altogether
disclose the object he had in view.</p>
<p>They replied as one man that they had perfect confidence in him,
and would implicitly obey.</p>
<p>He then said that the first thing he wished was the clearing of
the land by the river in order that he might erect a fortified
dwelling suitable to his position as their Leader in war. Next he
desired their permission to leave them for two months, at the end
of which he would return. He could not at that time explain the
reasons, but until his journey had been made he could not finally
settle among them.</p>
<p>To this announcement they listened in profound silence. It was
evident that they disliked him leaving them, yet did not wish to
seem distrustful by expressing the feeling.</p>
<p>Thirdly, he continued, he wanted them to clear a path through
the forest, commencing at Anker's Gate and proceeding exactly west.
The track to be thirty yards wide in order that the undergrowth
might not encroach upon it, and to be carried on straight to the
westward until his return. The distance to which this path was
cleared he should take as the measure of their loyalty to him.</p>
<p>They immediately promised to fulfil this desire, but added that
there was no necessity to wait till he left them, it should be
commenced the very next morning. To his reiterated request for
leave of absence they preserved an ominous silence, and as he had
no more to say, the assembly then broke up.</p>
<p>It was afternoon, and Felix, as he watched the departing chiefs,
reflected that these men would certainly set a watch upon him to
prevent his escape. Without another moment's delay he entered his
hut, and took from their hiding-place the diamond bracelet, the
turquoise ring, and other presents for Aurora. He also secured some
provisions, and put two spare bowstrings in his pocket. His bow of
course he carried.</p>
<p>Telling the people about that he was going to the next
settlement, Bedeston, and was anxious to overtake the chief from
that place who had attended the assembly, he started. So soon as he
knew he could not be seen from the settlement he quitted the trail,
and made a wide circuit till he faced westwards. Anker's Gate was a
small outlying post, the most westerly from Wolfstead; he went near
it to get a true direction, but not sufficiently near to be
observed. This was on the fourth of September. The sun was
declining as he finally left the country of his friends, and
entered the immense forest which lay between him and Aurora. Not
only was there no track, but no one had ever traversed it, unless,
indeed, it were Bushmen, who to all intents might be confused with
the wild animals which it contained.</p>
<p>Yet his heart rose as he walked rapidly among the oaks; already
he saw her, he felt the welcoming touch of her hand; the danger of
Bushman or gipsy was nothing. The forest at the commencement
consisted chiefly of oaks, trees which do not grow close together,
and so permitted of quick walking. Felix pushed on, absorbed in
thought. The sun sank; still onward; and as the dusk fell he was
still moving rapidly westwards.</p>
<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
<h3>The End</h3>
<br/>
<hr class="full" />
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />